Zaphon
Chronicles
Volume
Six
Lazy
Days
by
Daniel
Thomas Andrew
Daly
http://noahidebooks.angelfire.com
Prologue
A
time for rest. A time for relaxation. A time for doing not very much,
but going with the gentle and merry strum of life, resting in the
calm splendour of the life of Infinity and Eternity, resting in the
calm embrace of the eternal love of God.
PART
ONE
Still
and Calm Waters
Chapter
One
1,000,090
HY
And
yet, while Daniel was ever ambitious to achieve his goals of glory,
God had a word for his son. In the throneroom of Zaphon he spoke to
the 45th born of the Seraphim of Eternity and said ‘DEAR DANIEL.
DEAR CHILD. RELAX FOR A WHILE. RELAX AND BE AT PEACE WITH YOUR
BRETHREN. SEEK NOT TO DOMINATE THEIR HEARTS IN SUCH A SAVAGE MANNER
AS YOU HAVE DONE IN THE PAST, FOR I DESIRE A PERIOD OF REST FOR THE
REALM OF ETERNITY. A PERIOD OF SLUMBER, IN A WAY, A SPIRIT OF PEACE.
SO RELAX DEAR CHILD, AND LET YOUR AMBITIONS OF GLORY REST UNTIL A
MORE APPROPRIATE TIME, A MORE APPROPRIATE SEASON, WHEN THE CHARMS OF
DANIEL THE SERAPHIM AND HIS BROTHER VALANDRIEL WILL BE MORE WELCOME.’
And so Daniel, heeding his eternal father’s request, returned home
to Danielphon, kissed Ariel on the cheek and, having put it off for
several hundred thousand years, opened up his PC, clicked on his
‘Movies’ tab, and started watching some of the several million
movies he had put aside for watching at a later date. And then,
yelling for Ariel to grab some coke and cold pizza from the fridge,
he settled in to watch ‘Titanic 2 – Return to the Titanic’,
wondering how on earth Jack Dawson could possibly have survived which
was apparently the case.
*
* *
Gabriel
sat on his chair in the overseer’s office of Zaphon, working on his
yo-yo tricks. Michael, over on a chair against the wall, sipping on
his tea which Cindradel had brought in, watched his brother with mild
amusement. Of all the things that Gabriel could possibly have taken a
fancy to, he least expected the yo-yo to be on top of the list. But
Gabriel often surprised Michael, in his simplicity, his quiet charms,
in his ways of just being an angel of God and not pretending in
vanity to be anything more than that.
Michael’s
mind wandered back all those years to the early days in the Realm of
Eternity, when he and Gabriel were at Michael’s fort, before any of
their other brethren had come to be. He remembered one incident in
particular.
‘So,
Gab. We grab the rocks, fly to the lookout, throw them to hit the
enemy trees, fly to the river and dive in, and the first one back to
the fort is the winner.’
Gabriel
smiled at his brother. They were having a race again, which Michael
was fond of. Gabriel loved competing with Michael. He was wonderful
to play with and the two of them had had ever so much fun over the
last few years that he hoped it would really never end.
‘And
the winner gets to sleep in the big room of the fort and the loser
has to get his breakfast for a week,’ said Gabriel.
‘Ok,’
said Michael. ‘You ready?’
Gabriel
nodded.
‘Then
ready, set, go!’ yelled Michael, and the two of them took
off.
Thinking
back to that race Michael remembered that Gabriel beat him on that
occasion, but that was not surprising. Gabriel often had the edge on
Michael in athletic events. But it was the brotherly love – the
affection they shared – which made Michael so eternally glad that
God had brought his brother to be and that, here and now, the two of
them could still share a moment to be little children of God,
enjoying a yo-yo of all things.
‘Walk
the dog,’ said Michael to Gabriel. ‘You probably want to.’
‘I’ll
think about it,’ said Gabriel. ‘But I am working on some pretty
advanced yo-yo techniques now. For example, the firestorm, as I call
it.’
Gabriel
proceeded to throw the yo-yo in short little bursts in front of him,
like bursts of flame from the sun, Michael impressed at his ability
to keep it going for so long.
‘I
must admit that the yo-yo has never really been my thing, Gab. But to
each their own.’
‘You
should pick up a hobby. Get good at one.’
‘I
think, in what I am hearing some of the angels talk about God’s
words these days, that relaxation is the call of the moment. He wants
a quiet period in the world. A time to refresh ourselves from our
long works.’
‘Yes,
I have sensed that. It is why I chose the yo-yo. A simple toy, but we
are never anything more than children to God in so many ways, aren’t
we? After one million years, we are still so young. Still so much to
learn.’
‘And
perhaps we always will be, dear brother. Perhaps we always will
be.’
Gabriel
nodded, and proceeded to display his yo-yo talents.
*
* *
Meludiel
looked at Ambriel. She had some urges. Some desperate urges. 197
years without him touching her, on a sabbatical of 2 centuries
abstinence from sexual relations, and she had just about had enough.
And so drastic measures were called for.
She
walked into the room were he was watching one of Jesus sermons on
television and started undressing. Ambriel noticed her for a little
while but was mostly focused on the tv. And, finally, taking off her
stockings, standing before him completely naked, the bastard said the
following. ‘Uh, 3 years to go Mel. Sorry about that Mel.’
Meludiel looked at the man she was starting to think had converted to
homosexuality and left the room, hands in the air, saying ‘I give
up.’
*
* *
4
hours later Daniel had snuck into the back of Ambriel’s and
Meludiel’s place after a little birdie had whispered something in
Daniel’s ear. ‘So, Mel. You need a little action, do you? Heh heh
heh. I know somebody who can give you your hearts desires.’
She
looked at him, smiled to herself at lifes ironies, and came over and
kissed him on the lips, seductively, pushing in her tongue, enjoying
his taste. He put his hands to her breasts, took off her top and bra,
and started licking her nipples. And then, pulling down her knickers,
started eating her out. Suddenly, the brute pulled off his pants and
his manhood – his hot cock as Meludiel told him – ravaged her
face, the beast plunging it into her mouth, running it over her
breasts, and savaging it into her hot horny cunt. And then he
thrusted and thrusted and thrusted and she came in orgasmic ecstasy
as he erupted his hot creamy load into her moist vagina.
Later,
as she finished her cigarette, she saw Ambriel standing in the
doorway, looking at the couple with a soft smile on his face. She
mouthed ‘Sorry’ to him, but he mouthed back ‘Its ok. I
understand,’ and then he disappeared.
*
* *
Ambriel,
now that Daniel had left, was feeling a little better for his sister
and, realizing how absentminded he had been, should have suggested
she seek out Daniel sooner. But he had known she was being faithful
to her love. She was like that, and he didn’t want to say anything
which would upset her. But the situation had resolved itself and
sitting there, realizing just how much he was dedicated to being
spiritually pure and gentle at times, as he deemed necessary, he
realized perhaps that for so long how important Daniel’s affections
towards Meludiel must have been for her hearts desires. And realizing
that he no longer found any jealousy in his heart towards his
brother.
*
* *
It
was 3 years later, Ambriel walked into the room, and he knew that
Meludiel had not been with a man since Daniel that day. She was
sitting watching a movie so he started undressing. She instantly
noticed and queried wether the 3 years were up. He nodded. She moved
over to him, pulled on his pants, and his dick stood at attention.
She’d always had a particular fondness for Ambriel’s penis – it
was well shaped and she was able to grip it well. She moved her head
forwards, started sucking the tip while massaging his balls, and
pumped and pumped while he closed his eyes and slowly started
grunting. This was really starting to make her hot and, pulling down
her skirt and taking off her knickers, she guided Ambriel’s manhood
into her divine sanctuary. He looked at her as he was thrusting into
her, declaring his unfailing love, and she put her arms around her
beloved, grunting against him, feeling ever so alive while he pushed
into her in a rhythm of bliss. It took a few minutes but shortly she
was orgasming constantly and suddenly he let loose, told her he was
coming, and exploded his load into her.
It
was 4 weeks later, she had done the test, and confirmed she was
pregnant.
‘Can
we call it Daniel if it is a boy?’ she asked. ‘He took care of me
when you couldn’t.’
Ambriel
nodded. ‘Daniel will be a fine choice.’ Yet, in life’s little
ironies, 12 months later the angel Danielle, sitting obediently in
her pram, was the toast of Zaphon as proud parents Ambriel and
Meludiel showed her off to all and sundry.
*
* *
Callodyn
looked at her. Straight at her. Straight at her, and then realized
were he knew her from. It was early on, listening to pop music, she
had been an artist he had known and then moved on to other pop
artists. He was now sure of it.
‘Kelly.
It’s Kelly, isn’t it. That was your name on earth. You always
lied to me, Kayella. First of all the bullshit about being a
Callophim. But saying you had never been on earth, no. You had. And I
remember now. I have been having dreams of the time before, of the
time in the realm, before I was human. So many of our lives are
hidden from the Cherubim, our earlier years, and the Seraphim never
speak of it. But I remember. You were my twin, and we had to go to
earth, first me and then you. And I wanted you to become 6 girls and
then you said how about 7 girls, but that never happened in the end.
God forbade such nonsense. But you were Kelly something or other. I
can’t remember. When I got to Televere I had all but forgotten by
then.’
‘We
did meet, Callodyn. We met a number of times. But I prayed that you
would forget me. I didn’t want you then, at that time. I wanted you
to keep your faith and find the special girl for you.’
‘We
met?’
‘I
came to Canberra. We hooked up. But I took advantage of your
schizophrenia and asked God to take me from you. You were too
important to me, your heart choice for Haven. And I couldn’t join
that then. I was a faithful Christian.’
‘Did
we sleep together?’
She
looked at him, looked away, but nodded softly. ‘It was wonderful,
you know. You were perfect. Those few months were perfect. But
nothing lasts forever.’
‘Did
we have children?’
She
said nothing. She refused to speak. But she quickly looked at the
pictures of the children they had birthed in the Realm of Eternity on
the wall, and looked at him. And he asked her no further
questions.
*
* *
Mastering
‘Walking the Dog’ on the yo-yo didn’t take that long really,
but Michael puzzled how Gabriel managed the ‘Firestorm’ trick. It
looked impossible to him. But, with practice, all things could be
achieved – within reason.
He
sat down at his current desk in a lower section of Zaphon, were he
was currently employed in a basic finance position for a company
which made basic restaurant utensils. They had an unbelievably high
number of depots out in the outer discs, but a lot of the
administrative and executive decision-making took place at HQ in
Zaphon. The company was one of ‘Talzudiel’s’ companies, that
particular Seraphim brother of his being quite adroit in the business
world. Talzudiel was the 43rd of the Male Seraphim angels, a South
American angel of Columbia. Michael knew Talzudiel to be a quite
competitive angel and felt linking into his business world would
provide a stable place of employment for as long as he should desire.
Still, he’d had to apply for the position and was up against some
competent financial wizards from outer discs looking to work in the
big centre, but his experience as overseer of the realm seemed to
guarantee him the position and he was not surprised when he got the
job. Talzudiel had suggested he would give him a position anyway, if
he really wanted to work for him, but Michael had insisted on going
through the protocols of actually applying, as his conscience
directed him to do as such.
Work
was hectic at the moment – very hectic. The big announcement had
just come from Gabriel – the expansion of the realm once more with
‘Zadennuphora’ the 31st of the Discs of the Realm of Eternity now
ready to unfold and be officially settled and sanctioned. While
another 17 discs had been created so far beyond Zadennuphora, but
sparsely settled as of this date, they had to yet await official
classification and official disc status, promised forthcoming at a
later date. But one at a time, so God had constantly maintained.
Thus, yet again, the realm was to be doubled in official size and
classification, from Zaphon to the rim of Canbraphora doubled with
the new disc of Zadennuphora becoming now officially the verified
31st disc of the Realm of Eternity. What that meant for the company
was an expansion of business as the new disc would be inevitably
settled with the angelic families who needed, yet again, more
room.
Inevitably,
each disc had so far gone through a teething process of having to
become officially verified as a genuine and authentic cultural disc
of the Realm of Eternity. 48 discs had been created so far at this
moment in time, but only 31 now had official status – officially
recognized by God as discs of the Realm of Eternity. The outer discs
were, at this stage, just land. Just the place were official status,
once approved of, would be recognized. All the discs had been named,
so far, up until the 70th planned disc of the realm, Davriphora.
Rumour had it that God had spoken with Elenniel and promised her the
71st disc in her honour, as well as the 72nd through to the 140th
discs, all in honour of the female Seraphim. Apparently she had
shared this possibility with a number of her sisters, but she was
reluctant to ever confirm such a truth with any news reporter,
television presenter or the like. Thus, that was still officially a
matter of speculation. But, what they did know factually, was that
there would definitely be at least 70 official discs, and time would
tell beyond that point.
Official
status was not automatically granted, but God had declared that he
personally would see to it to ensure continuity came when it needed
to be, and that the discs would be ready, wether they liked it or
not, to come alive to the purpose for which they served. Yet so far
no real problems had arisen in such plans, each consecutive disc
usually following standard procedures to ensure its official status.
There was a protocol, thus, which God mandated would be followed, in
point of fact, wether the angels liked it or not. But such was the
necessity of God to create and maintain a society for an evergrowing,
everbreeding populace. Yet, so the theophany maintained, God
delighted in this grand project of his anyway. It was the stuff of
the dreams and managerial expertise of God, and that was the way he
liked it.
What
Michael had learned from Gabriel’s discussions with himself was
that Zadennuel, 31st born of the male Seraphim of Eternity had now
disavowed any latter day claim to the overseersmanship of the whole
realm in favour, instead, of being outright overseer of Zadennuphora.
And no sooner had he announced this than Michael was receiving CC
emails from all the male Seraphim practically announcing the same
basic idea. Each of them would take an overseers post for each disc
in accordance with birthrank. This had been speculated for so long by
many of the Seraphim males, but had never quite come into reality as
the official way it should be – not officially declared as such
from Zaphon anyway. But now, with the 31st disc coming to be, for
various reasons it seemed that Zadennuel had made the decision on
behalf of his Seraphim male brothers and nobody really was
complaining.
For
a long while, mainly in a jovial sense of appropriateness to the
idea, the male Seraphim had claimed each disc as their disc based on
birthrank. They hadn’t always been overseers, though, and Azrael
paid scant regard to his supposed position of responsibility over the
27th disc of Yalphora, leaving the old Cherubim overseer of Yalphon,
the town from Terraphora disc after which the 27th disc had been
named to handle such responsibilities. But it had become an unwritten
tradition that each disc would have the corresponding male seraphim
as its overseer. But now, with Zadennuel’s strong insistence that
even the overseersmanship of Zaphon, should it ever come his way, be
available, such a reality was not necessary. He had his own strong
agenda, did their beloved brother Zadennuel, and in the machinations
of the glory of Zadennuphora, Zadennuel would claim his own
particular glory, determined, so it seemed, to not leave such a
legacy to the whims of another. And Michael could not really fault
him for such a desire.
But
one Seraphim, Daniel, while he voiced gladness at Zadennuel’s
decision, had been somewhat alarmed at many a male seraphims opinion
that Zadennuel really had about the right idea, quite strongly voiced
his desires to still at a point in the progression of
overseersmanship's, to be overseer of the entire realm if still at
all possible. Gabriel had then CC’d everybody and said, while he
would not state exactly how long the term of his overseersmanship
over the realm would be, the third of the Seraphim males, Raphael,
was likely the choice he would make one day to replace him and, as
such, perhaps a continuance in birthrank may possibly arise, but not
absolutely insisted upon. This meant each overseer, in turn, would be
free to accept the offer made by his potential predecessor. Which
meant for Daniel quite a long wait, potentially, which Michael knew
would frustrate his ambitious young brother. He was not really sure
what Daniel and Valandriel were after, not completely sure at all,
but he surmised the penny would drop one day and Daniel would let on
about his goals and visions for the Realm of
Eternity.
Zadennuphora,
like Zadennuel, was to be based on the Moroccan culture of Mitraphora
district of Terraphora disc. The Angelic tongue was the universal
language of the Realm of Eternity, but each culture had developed,
somewhat, its own distinct language system, as mirrored on earth. But
Canbraphora had set a precedent, by being largely based on Canberra
and Australian culture, with the chief tongue actually being English
for Canbraphora, the dominant language of Canberra on Earth.
Zadennuphora, in Zadennuel’s plans, was to follow this tradition
and thus Arabic and Berber would become the dominant tongues of this
disc, with the major districts and provinces of Zadennuphora coming
from the established names of Morocco in Mitraphora district of
Terraphora as well as from Morocco on Earth. And after that, so
Zadennuel had announced, the names would be established from Moroccan
angels and humans, who would be the one to inhabit this disc,
following the pattern established with Canbraphora.
It
was exciting times for the Realm and for Talzudiel’s corporation as
well, but for Michael, while he enjoyed the work somewhat, he really
wanted to take his father’s current mandate of rest and relaxation
seriously. And thus, sitting in his office cubicle, throwing a yo-yo
into the air, he was happy in his own little world, content to be
doing not very much, nothing to straining, and at peace with the
universe.
*
* * * *
King
David and Jesus were having a game of chess. A long awaited game of
chess and, in fact, their first. They had only ever met a few times
over the million years nearly of their lives, and while David had
greeted him warmly, he had never really taken that much of a personal
interest in the Jesus fellow. But, today, playing chess, in a request
from Jesus to spend some personal time with the King, David was
happily enough making his moves, smiling at his opponent, engaged in
friendly chit-chat. And then, after they had both settled into the
game, an interesting conversation began. A most interesting one
indeed.
‘So,
JC. You are the pseudo-christ, apparently. The great and grand
pseudo-christ of 1 Enoch.’
Jesus
nodded. ‘Apparently, David.’
David
stroked his beard, and took a sip of his apple cider.
‘And
Pseudo means false, doesn’t it. It means false.’
‘Indeed
it does,’ responded Jesus.
‘Mmm,’
nodded David, looking at his pieces. After a while he continued. You
know, Ambriel doesn’t challenge that. Still, after so long we have
waited, assuming her probably would in the end, he claims there is no
point in doing so. In fact, supposedly, it is not even his domain
anyway. Supposedly, in his own words, he is not even the subject of
this grand and great epistle of 1 Enoch. Supposedly you are.’
Jesus
nodded. ‘I guess so,’ he finally responded.
David
continued stroking his beard, and then went on with the subject.
‘Well, now, that is interesting. Very interesting. You see, despite
the constant assurances of rabbi after rabbi, including Rashi and
Maimonides, names I am well familiar with, constant assurances that
the Pseudepigrapha is just that, false writings. Well. Well I know a
little better on that subject. I am a little more informed. You see,
those writings indeed are Jewish scripture. They are our work. They
are our righteousness. A number of do in fact accept the
Pseudepigraphal writings as holy, sacred and of scriptural
importance. In fact – in very point of fact – fundamentally
so.’
Jesus,
looking down at the chess set, had a subtle smile on his face. He did
not really see this coming. Was it? Really? Was it an acknowledgement
of sorts? After all this time?
David
continued. ‘I have looked at your genealogy. I have consulted the
lists, and spoken to my descendant, after descendant, and indeed
found a Joseph who is my progeny. Indeed he is. And it was funny. I
asked him an important question. Well? Did you? Did you sleep with
her? Whose kid is he really? We are all dying to know. And you know
what he said, Jesus? You know what he said.’
Jesus,
staring at David, calmly replied ‘What?’
David
smiled. ‘Well Joseph spluttered, ummed and ahhed for quite a while
and then, almost pleadingly looked at me and said, ‘Well, you know.
I mean, what can I really say?’ So I sort of put two and two
together, and have come to the conclusion that you are really quite
indeed flesh and blood, and of the house of David to boot.’
‘Yes,’
responded Jesus. ‘Yes, I don’t think I have ever really fully
denied such a claim. I certainly was a human being.’
David
smiled at him. ‘Indeed, Jesus. Indeed. And while there is indeed a
seed of Joseph in your very flesh and blood, Joseph later on that day
spoke to me and said this. ‘Well, King. There was an angelic
visitation. Sorry, but that is the way it is. Gabriel himself. Said
our new baby was to be glorious, the son of the very God. And then he
smiled quite coyly at me, and I rebuked him instantly. I said to him,
‘You are lying. To my very face, you are lying.’ And he softened,
then, and said. ‘Well. It was confusing. It was a confusing time,
and our memories are shaped by legend, after all, and who can truly
say what transpired. But he is an angel after all. That sort of
proves our case.’ So I did acknowledge that truth, as indeed your
gospel wisdom was trained in eternity, as I have vague memories of.
But many of Israel were Cherubim in our former lives, and while you
also were one of us, that proved nothing. That proved no great boast.
I investigated your Christianity from former years, and learned
quickly were your human soul picked up and continued this work. But,
even then, it was, I believe, a work of your own devising, was it
not? A work of your own imagination. A work of your own political
agenda. Did you really ever have the approval of God? Were you ever
really the Messiah?’
‘You
spoke of 1 Enoch,’ responded Jesus. ‘Who is that figure?’
‘Why
is it not yourself,’ responded David. ‘Are you not the paragon of
glory to have claimed such a role?’
Jesus
went silent. He had a question. A key and fundamental question. ‘Do
you accept that then? That I am the Christ of 1 Enoch?’
‘How
can I ever possibly hope to challenge your glory on the issue, dear
old Jesus Christ? How could I ever.’
‘But,
do you accept me then? Do you accept me as the Christ of the
Christian faith, the Christ of Christianity? The redeemer of the
church, who I purchased from the world of Sin with my blood? Do you
accept me and my bride?’
David
looked down at the chess set. Perhaps, now, time to settle the issue
once and for all.
‘Jesus,
in truth we do love you. I don’t think you really doubt that
anymore. I don’t think you really do. 1 Enoch is in truth now
sacred and holy scripture to myself and many Jewish thinkers. We
accept that. I foresee that no other claimant can really hope to
challenge your apparent fulfillment of 1 Enoch, and it would, in
truth, be vanity to do so. Not even Ambriel could be bothered. Sure,
you can be the Christ of 1 Enoch, if that is what you really want my
son. But, and I mean this ever so sincerely, don’t expect us to
come a knocking on your church doors. Holy rollers, belting out an
Alleluia and a praise the lord at the drop of a hat, really, my dear
friend, is not quite our style. We are a bit deeper than that. Sure,
you are old enough now. You can have something of an acknowledgement
by the community if that is what you really need. I didn’t think
you really ever gave that much of a damn about our approval anyway.
Not as far as I see it in your gospel.’
‘I
had a point,’ responded Jesus.
‘I
guess you did,’ said David flatly. ‘But if you want our
acknowledgement and, more than that, our actual praise, there are
some issues which still, really, need to be addressed. By both you
and your bride. You haven’t, dear child of mine, always treated
your Jewish family with the greatest of respect. You, at times I do
recall from our earthly sojourn, have in fact been the very bane of
Jewish life. Quite antagonistic indeed, and yes, we really did
suffer.’
Jesus
went quiet. Very quiet. David had raised a point – a very human, a
very real point, and Jesus, in humility, would have to accept his
rebuke. But he spoke in his defense. He raised his issue. ‘We have,
as a Christian community, for very long now been amending our ways
and trying to be better people. We, too, have a reputation to
consider. It is not just old Israel that seeks the glory of the
Kingdom of God, either, dear David. It is not a vision splendid of
the magnificence of the Israelite kingdom which motivates us. And
neither, in truth, did Rophiel, or Bahaliel, or even old Callodyn
assent to such divine wisdom. A new agenda began recently and, in the
truths of that new agenda, I found sufficient enough justification
for my old ideal, my old purpose, my old spirit. I saw sufficient
enough justification indeed. Christianity has issues with Israel,
dear David. Fundamental issues. Issues on holiness, issues on
justice, issues on love. We are yet to really see eye to eye on many
an issue. Yes, you have grown old as a people, and stabilised
somewhat. The idolatry is largely gone, and your fidelity is obvious
now.’
‘You
judge us still,’ said David, throwing his hand in the air. ‘Have
you really yourself learned wisdom? Have you? You would not be so
casual and quick to judge the son of God if indeed you had?’
‘And
you hide behind such apparent justification as if it is the hallmark
of virtue itself. But I see through it David. I see through it. I see
a people, which many a prophet would testify to, is not as holy as it
perhaps believes itself to be. A see a son of God which, while
enduring for now, I still indeed question as to wether this beast of
Judaism has the strength of eternity. Wether this divine wisdom of
the so called Jewish soul has the true devotion of heart to indeed go
the distance. And, in truth, I am yet to be satisfied that it
does.’
‘And
that is your concern then? Our eternal hope and legacy?’
‘A
large one.’
David
nodded. ‘Ok. Ok. I see were you are coming from. I have some
understanding of your concerns. Really, I could say a lot in our
defense, as you seem to think our faith shallow, and our commitment
temporary. But I will give you one, perhaps banal to you in many
ways, perhaps awfully trite and traditional, but one definite answer.
We are indeed God’s son, the Jewish nation. But it is because of
that truth, and often in spite of ourselves, that we have his favour.
We are his. We belong to him. Our salvation, our eternal commitment,
our life of eternity, ultimately can not rest on our own
efforts.’
‘On
that much we agree,’ responded the Christ of 1 Enoch.
‘Yes.
But to belabour my point, it is on God’s grace upon us. It is upon
his choosing of us, his own sanctification of us, his own effort, by
which we are saved. Can a man truly save himself? Can there be any
true saviour apart from the holy one upon high? I challenge you,
Jesus of Nazareth, can a might cross of salvation yet still be an
answer to the power of the one who created everything, both you and
I.’
‘No,’
responded Jesus, and said nothing more.
David
looked at him for a moment, thinking that over. Shortly, quick to
respond, he continued. ‘No, you say? No? Then my point is
accepted?’
‘There
are choices, King of Israel. Choices which God requires of us. His
salvation is by his grace upon his chosen, but he looks for things
within us, choices of life, choices of wisdom, choices of holiness,
choices of love. And, in my mind, it is when I see those choices
being made, being made be a community which genuinely cares and does
not rely upon its apparent choseness. It is when I see real, life
affirming, true holiness affirming choices being made, that I realize
that God is indeed saving a soul.’
‘Mmm.
The heart of the problem. I have one response to that, and I will
leave this as our fundamental point. You are quite strict in your
judgements upon us. You set a high, apparently, level of holiness as
a justifier for the salvation you speak of. But we Jews have likewise
studied the scriptures, and while we quite possibly lack your own
severe determinations on this particular issue, we would make this
bold claim. We have made enough wise choices. We have been faithful
enough. We have accepted the Lord of Glory and, in truth, we are holy
enough to satisfy his desires. To satisfy the one who knows us better
than all the wisdom of the Church of Glory or that Jesus of Nazareth
can aspire to.’
Jesus
looked at the chess set. And then he smiled to himself. He would
finish this conversation with his own last point. ‘Yes, King David.
I know that as well. And I do trust that you are confident of
yourselves. Perhaps it is enough and, in the end, if I really had to
say so, I would through the mercies of God quite likely agree. You
have addressed the fundamentals, and your salvation is assured. But,
for me, and this is just were I am coming from personally. Just me,
and perhaps my Christian church. We want a bit better of a standard
than Israel maintains. We want a bit better of a community of
holiness, a community of peace, a community of love. Sure, Judaism,
whatever? Your doing great. Keeping the faith. Studying Torah. But,
to cut a long story short, dear father. We aint that impressed. We
haven’t been so far, and things don’t look like changing any time
soon. Ok. That is just the way it is.’
‘Then
you have my blessing, Jesus. You have my blessing. Don’t worry
about it ok, we sure as hell don’t. Sure, be super holy people.
Probably pillars of pride in reality. Reinvent the spiritual wheel,
be paragons of bloody virtue. Be Clark Kent himself. We don’t
bloody care, Jesus of Nazareth. Quite frankly, we would rather watch
reruns of Seinfeld, enjoy our KOSHER dinners, keep Sabbath
FAITFHFULLY, and smile at everyone as the world passes us by.
Kapiche, dear Jesus of Nazareth.’
Jesus
looked at him, and smiled inwardly. ‘Then enjoy the average,’
said the Christ child. ‘I guess you were born for such
glories.’
‘Amen
and amen and Amen,’ responded the King. ‘Now, it is your move.
Enough with the theology. I have things to do later, and we can’t
chat all day, as much as I would really like to.’
Jesus
nodded, looked down at the chess set, and, in his heart, acknowledged
the point which God was saying to him anyway. ‘Why even bother with
my son, Yesh. Why even bother.’ And Jesus sighed.
Chapter
Two
King David looked at the list Callodyn had passed
him. Pastimes. Pleasant pastimes to fill in ones life. The list was
of things to do, and David looked it over.
Things to
do with your free time. A Haven Noahide Fellowship general list.
·
Work (lots and lots of work available)
· Read comics
·
Read books
· Read magazines
· Listen to music
·
Play an instrument
· Sing in bands
· Play board games
/ assorted games, such as
· Monopoly
· Squatter
·
Connect 4
· Chess
· Backgammon
· Scrabble
·
Risk
· Checkers
· Guess Who
· Ludo
·
Kingmaker
· Snakes and Ladders
· Connect the dots
·
Play card games
· Play role playing games
· Play
computer games
· Play arcade games
· Play video
games
· Knit
· Weave
· Craftwork
·
Play marbles
· Do Jigsaws
· Surf the internet
·
Talk on the phone
· Watch television – Movies, Serials,
Cartoons, Documentaries, Sports, etc etc etc
· Play sports –
Cricket, Rugby League, Rugby Union, Softball, Baseball, Grid Iron,
Basketball, Golf, Tennis,
· Australian Rules Football,
Soccer, Badminton, Darts, Netball, Hockey, Ice Hockey, Curling,
Skiing, Sailing, Volleyball, Curling, Handball, Gymnastics
o
etc, etc, etc
· Travel
· Go on cruises
·
Ballet
· Sight seeing
· Eat food
· Have
sex
· Watch and read pornography
· Study –
religion, nature, philosophy, science, architecture, you name it
·
Get involved and dedicated to a spiritual community – A Church, A
Mosque, A Temple, A Synagogue
· Go to mall
· Try on
new clothes
· Go to dances
· Irish Dancing
·
Latin Dancing
· Go to clubs
· Go to pubs
·
Paint
· Sculpt
· Carpentry
· Make models
·
Teach children
· Nature walks
· Go swimming –
beaches, rivers, pools
· Go to concerts
· Go to
plays
· Act in plays
· Do puzzles
· Do
Crosswords
· Do Rubik’s cubes
· Do Rubik’s
clocks
· Do cooking competitions
· Sit on a beach and
do nothing
· Surf
· Ride Bikes
· Athletics
for fun
· Go to shows
· Go to fairs
·
Roller-skate
· Rollerblade
· Ice Skate
·
Cooking for fun
· Collect things
· Paintball
·
Go Karting
· Magic Mountain – big waterslides
·
Mazes
· Playgrounds
· Raise Family – Teach Family
Values
· Do nothing but mope around the house
· Write
stories
· Email friends
· Tell Jokes
· Start
Websites
· Build universal business empire franchises
·
Play the stock-market
· Spend a moderate amount at the
casino
· Act in movies
· Scuba diving
·
Dating
· Go fishing
· Go camping
· Mountain
Climbing
· Have kids and build a kingdom
· You name
it, go ahead and have some fun.
David smiled to
himself. ‘A practical list, Callodyn. I guess I had never given the
issue that much thought. Sort of travelled were life had taken
me.’
‘Oh, you can make routines, and timetables and all
the stuff people do. If you really want to. Have a full yearly
calendar, achieve it all, satisfy all your curiousity and
desire.’
‘This last one, though. Oh, I mean the second
last one. Have kids and build a kingdom? What exactly is that
supposed to mean.’
‘Glad you asked,’ responded Callodyn.
‘Well, now that the realm is of such a bloody vast size, with so
many divers opportunities available in it, and an evergrowing
preponderance of land for us to fill up and use as we see fit,
establishing our own dynasties becomes something of a definite
possibility. The main rule I advise personally to interested members
of Haven on the issue is, but first of all I query wether they want
to do this in Haven’s overall fellowship, or go off on a new agenda
idea, as they call it. But if they want to remain faithful to Haven,
which really doesn’t mind either way, we have a sort of traditional
view on the subject. First, for the discs, to honour the overseer and
to abide by basic disc law and custom. Our empires must fall within
acceptable Torah law and principle of each sovereign disc of
eternity. But in forming our own distinctive nations within various
discs, through the purchase of land to establish such a country,
dreams of glory and eternal kingship can truly be realized. Haven has
a lot of copyrighted information on this subject, and a list of
billions of reserved names on the official register for us to utilize
in the formation of such kingdoms. I mean, really, names aren’t
that hard to come up with. If you must know, we just made our entire
list up. Just got sort of creative with letters and wordplay and had
a lot of fun for a while.’
David smirked at that point. ‘Oh.
So you just make them up.’
‘Well somebody has to do it.
Anyway, once you start your kingdom project, we support you as a
fellowship to establish our vision as a Noahide body, and bless your
efforts with finances, teachings and other supports.’
David
grinned. He had heard about the obviousness of Noah before. ‘Mmm,
hey Callodyn. Just start an empire, hey? I suppose someone has to do
it, hey?’
‘Exactly,’ responded the Cherubim. ‘Hey, I
have been told that once you get the handle on things, they come
pretty easily after a while.’
‘Like rulership, huh? Comes
pretty easy after a while? Huh?’
‘You said it. Anyway,
kingdom building is just one of those activities. We sense that a
whole heck of a lot of people will be interested in that hobby. And
not just kingdom building, but the major work.’
‘Which is,
dare I ask it,’ responded David.
‘Empire. Many kingdoms,
united, serving your own pinnacle of glory.’
‘Should I
even have bothered to ask,’ responded David dryly. ‘Look, bro.
Thanks for the list. I will take it to heart. I mean, really, thanks.
You have been an eye-opener.’
‘Glad to be of help,’
responded Callodyn the Cherubim. As he left, David shook his head
somewhat. ‘There goes a braver soul than I,’ said the King of
Israel to himself. ‘A braver soul than I.’
* * * *
*
‘I do believe,’ continued Gabriel to Callodyn,
‘that it was not that long ago you in fact did pray to be returned
to earth for a continuation of your spiritual ministry.’
Callodyn
stared at Gabriel, blankly to start with, then made the connection.
He picked up his glass of Coca Cola, thanked the bartender, and took
a sip, as always enjoying the refreshing buzz of the stuff.
‘Right.
Right Gabriel. So he is happy enough for me to go back now, is he?
Well, how exactly?’
‘You can’t be born again again on
earth. He won’t hear of it. Won’t tolerate that. But there is a
buzz at the moment, down there. A buzz which God hasn’t been
reporting on. In point of real fact, it is some of the hierarchy of
Haven itself which have been on the news recently, presenting old
documented histories of the messianic advent, with videos and other
reports of all the angelic interventions. Well, a lot of people have
been accepting this, but there is a major Atheistic platform which
said ‘If he can provide another witness, which he should do after
all this time, then will probably accept that.’
‘And he
approved of this? That’s not like God at all. He has always wanted
faith, hasn’t he?’
‘Not at this point in man’s
history. Apparently the atheistic platform is pretty genuine. People
have real doubts but are prepared to believe and commit if it appears
true enough. Apparently this time they just lack a decent
witness.’
‘And how do I figure into this?’
‘God
has contacted an orthodox rabbi on earth. Told him the head of Haven
Noahide Fellowship will be appearing from a cloud out of heaven in
Jerusalem in the next week. That was two days ago. You don’t
actually have a choice. I am hear to get you to say your farewells.
Your prayer has been answered, but remember you prayed it. Oh, and he
has a task for you.’
‘Which is?’
‘He hasn’t
yet said wether he approves of the 1 Enoch Pseudo-Christ doctrine or
not. Never, ever answered any of Jesus’ or the Churches queries on
the issue.’
‘How does that affect me?’
‘He
wants you, if you want the job, to make the bold enough claim that
Jesus was a Jew on a mission – nothing more than that. But that he
did make this point for you to know – I just want YOU to teach
that.’
‘Uh, what does that mean.’
‘A clever way
from God of maintaining his official ‘No Comment’ policy on the
issue.’
‘Oh, I say old chap,’ said Callodyn, in his best
toffee English accent. ‘That sounds like a bit of a sticky
wicket.’
‘Apparently you have a reputation down there
which has to sort the issue out.’
‘So I teach Jesus was
not the Pseudo-Christ then? Mmm. Interesting.’
Gabriel
paused, and looked straight at Callodyn. ‘Uh, no. I didn’t
specifically say that. Did I?’
‘But you just
said….?’
‘What did I say?’ responded Gabriel,
cautiously.
Callodyn went slowly. ‘That he was a…..a Jew.
On a mission.’
‘Yes. Yes, specifically that. That he was a
Jew on a mission. A very good argument from Haven indeed. Suits God’s
purposes no end.’
‘So he actually is the Pseudo-Christ!’
exclaimed Callodyn with grave concern on his face.
‘Uh, mmm,
uhh. Well, did I actually say he was the Pseudo-Christ?’
Callodyn
smiled. Oh boy. So that was the way it was with God and Jesus, was
it? That was the way it bloody was? ‘Just suits your bloody
purposes for the Christian Empire to believe that, and for us
Havenides to attack them constantly on the subject, don’t it,
bro?’
Gabriel smiled, happily. ‘Oh, you know. Whatever. I
mean, sure. Why not. If that’s what you want to do. I mean, sure.
Hey, why not preach that Jesus is the Antichrist. I mean, if that’s
what you want to do.’
‘Shut up, David! Just shut
up.’
‘Heh, heh, heh,’ grinned Gabriel madly. ‘Hey, we
weren’t born yesterday, Cally boy.’
‘No. No you weren’t.
A good bloody servant, aren’t I? Happily ENTERTAINING God, aren’t
I?’ responded Callodyn, with not the faintest tinge of sarcasm in
his voice.’
Gabriel looked around, head in the air.
‘Whatever, Callodyn. Whatever. Now say your farewells, We have work
to do.’
It was later that day, just about to leave
for earth, for yet another jolt in his glorious Havenide ambitions.
He made up his mind, though, on one particular issue. One for
certain. The dudes made up 1 Enoch in the end, anyway. Call it
whatever the hell you like, it was still Pseudepigrapha as far as
Callodyn was concerned, and Jesus was just that. A Jew on a mission,
Zealous for Empire, Serving his bloody God of Glory, out to rule the
world. As simple as that, Callodyn confidently declared to himself.
As simple as that.
* * * * *
King David
stared at the young Messianic Rabbi. ‘The 70 books. We will accept
the 70 books in the latter days? Is that what you are
saying.’
‘Yes,’ replied the Messianic Rabbi confidently.
They are the Pseudepigrapha. They are of such age, character and
notability and of such historical significance in Judaism, predating
the advent of Jesus, that they shall now be considered sacred and
holy writings.’
David chuckled. ‘Aye Carumba. Sacred and
holy writings. FICTION! Sacred and holy writings. Really?’
‘Yes,
Yes they did likely make them up,’ responded the Rabbi. ‘Yes. Yes
they were invention. But they were inspired as well – they ARE
inspired as well. They serve a divine purpose, in this sense.’
David
wanted to hit the bloody rabbi for that kind of statement. Really, he
wanted to throttle him. But he couldn’t. There it was. There it
was. They had said it. Established the historical precedent for the
idea. Established it in history. And now they were writing about it
and saying ‘It Is Written’ in their traditional manner.
‘Yeh,
well fine. I guess we don’t have much of a choice then, do
we?’
‘Uh, no. You see, to argue that Ambriel was the
fulfilment of the 1 Enoch Messiah, and Not Jesus, has been called
‘pathetic’ by even Callodyn himself, historically. He fully
acknowledged at a point, in his writings, that Jesus quoted the hell
out of that book and really comes across, after reading the gospels,
as being the Christ of 1 Enoch very strongly.’
‘Yet, it is
Pseudepigrapha. False Writings.’
‘Yes,’ responded the
Rabbi.
‘Then we were right to reject his claims.
‘Yes,’
responded the Rabbi.
‘But, now, supposedly, the 70 books are
accepted. Supposedly, now, they are scripture.’
The Rabbi
nodded his head for a while to himself, thinking that over and said,
‘well, well. Mmm. Well, kind of, sort of, I suppose. Mmm.
Well.’
‘Out with it, man. Out with it,’ rebuked the King
of Israel.
‘Well yes.’
‘And who accepts this? We
don’t. Israel doesn’t.’
‘Many messianic Israelites.
Callodyn does. Ask him. He just accepted it a few hours ago, after a
trial of the heart.’
I’ll go ask him. Maybe talk to you
another time.
* * * * *
‘They made
the Pseudepigraphal books up, Callodyn. As simple as that. The church
itself testifies to this truth.’
Callodyn nodded. ‘Yes,
David. They did.’
‘Then why even bother accepting
them?’
‘Because they are of significant age, significant
historical relevance for Judaism, teach many interesting and notable
ideas of spirituality, and can be accepted on the grounds of
appropriate fictive ancient Jewish reading material.’
‘And
that is all you argue?’
‘And because of that truth, Jesus
is the Pseudo-Christ. The False Christ. It has all the authority in
the world, and none at all. He is the Christ of many of the hearts of
the children of Adam and Eve, the Church of Glory, and is officially
this. Officially their Pseudo-Christ.’
‘And that is all he
is?’
‘Yes. But he is officially the Pseudo-Christ.
Officially the false Christ. I now accept that.’
‘Because
he made an excellent attempt at 1 Enoch.’
‘Precisely.’
David
stopped, and considered that. ‘To…To you, the
Pseudo-Christ.’
‘Yes.’
‘Not the official
Messiah of Isaiah 11? Not David? Not Ambriel?’
‘No. In
fact, most definitely not.’
‘And David’s claims to 1
Enoch?’
‘You are kidding aren’t you? Contradicting
yourself aren’t you?’
‘Yes. Yes, I guess we would be. We
would look like a joke to you, wouldn’t we? Wouldn’t we, if we
argued that doctrine?’
‘In fact, Davy, pretty fucking
pathetic if you did.’
‘So this is what Haven accepts then?
Jesus as the Pseudo-Christ?’
‘Uh, yeh. Yeh, completely.
Oh, because he is just that, though. The Pseudo-Christ. Because he is
just that, we are like you guys. We don’t give that much of a crap
about the ‘Jew on a Mission’ the blessed ‘Christ Child’.
Sure, let him pursue his agenda of glory. Let him do what he wants.
His life. His glory. We are happy enough with Noah, and our
traditional family way of things. Sure, we will never dispute Jesus
being the 1 Enoch guy, but after that we don’t give the slightest
damn. We don’t need him for salvation. Matthew, Mark and Luke never
teach this at all. John and Paul largely conceived of that idea.
Sure, he has an interesting gospel. Intense. Full on spirituality.
But fine. Christianity can do its thing, and we don’t really
object, and we will do ours. Uh, yeh, we agree and know he wasn’t
God. We are not confused on that point. But apart from that, whoop de
doo Jesus of Nazareth. Whoo de fucking doo.’
King David
looked at Callodyn. The famous old Karaite Noahide warrior of faith.
He had been through the battles with the church. Reached a conclusion
he was happy with. An answer which worked. Didn’t care now. Didn’t
want to bother any further.
‘Yes, well I see your point
Callodyn. I see your point. Jesus, though, has persecuted the hell
out of Israel for a long time in many ways. We are NOT
impressed.’
‘Your problem. I don’t really care.’
‘No.
No, I guess you wouldn’t, would you.’
‘Hey, Davy. You
can’t make an omelette without breaking eggs. Ask a pissed off
Canaanite about that issue, BRO.’
David went silent. But he
spoke after a moment. ‘Yehh. Yehh. Cool. Cool. Bloody, bloody,
cool.’
‘Anyway, continued Callodyn, I have to be off very
soon. Gabriel will be back in a few short hours, and I have yet again
a sojourn on earth. The Christ Child needs some keen competition. He
can’t have every soul in the Kingdom of God in the end,
anyway.’
‘Good luck, Mr Daly. Good luck.’
‘Cheers.’
*
* * * *
‘And then, can you believe it, he claims
that Jesus really is the Pseudo Christ. That it is pretty much an
open and shut case. I mean, can you believe that?’
After a
few moments, God spoke to King David. ‘JESUS? THE PSEUDO-CHRIST?
AND THIS IS WHAT CALLODYN MAINTAINS?’
‘Yeh,’ said David.
‘Yes, he bloody does.’
After a few moments, not really
believing it, but he heard a soft but pleasant ‘HEH, HEH, HEH. THE
PSEUDO-CHRIST, HEY CALLODYN. THE PSEUDO-CHRIST.’
David
sounded annoyed. ‘What is that supposed to mean? Your not agreeing
with him, are you?’
‘IF CALLODYN SAYS SO, WELL I GUESS OLD
YESHKA OF NAZARETH REALLY WAS THE PSEUDO-CHRIST. I MEAN IF CALLODYN
SAYS SO. HEH.’
‘You have a sense of humour?’ queried
David, extremely annoyed and puzzled.
‘GO IN PEACE, MY
SON.’
‘But, but. But Callodyn? Jesus? The Pseudo-Christ? I
mean, come on, big guy? Come on. Seriously.’
‘GO IN PEACE.
HEH HEH HEH. GO IN PEACE, MY CHILD.’ And God spoke no further.
*
* * * *
Four months later King David was sitting in a
pentecostal church. ‘Good grief,’ he said to himself.
‘Pentecostals. They do bloody go on about it.’
But the
Christian Church of eternal Triumphant Glory surrounded there beloved
Jewish brethren, showering him with affection, love and kind words.
And all David could say was ‘Why me?’
* * * *
*
‘Yeh. Yeh, that is the passage, Callodyn,’
Daniel responded to his brother. ‘That is the one.’
Callodyn
had referred to a passage in 1 Samuel 8. A passage in which Israel
had rejected God as king, choosing their own king.
‘Right,’
said Callodyn. ‘I remember you showed that to me once. So, well.’
He left off speaking. ‘So, that is the way it really is to you,
Daniel. The way it really is to you. Jesus – just another Christ
Child. David – another seeker after the glory due God alone. All
these icons of the heart of men, thieves of the loyalty due
God.’
‘Uh, uh, yeh. Pretty much. I mean, understand the
passage literally as well. God did tell them to go ahead with a King
for themselves. He was being practical, you see. Know their
shortcomings. The same goes for the Christian thing.’
‘And
Noahide faith? You don’t criticize me for that, though.’
‘Noah
is hardly an idol to Noahides. Just an old father figure. Never
really been anything more to them, as I have seen it. Still, we need
family anyway. But, yes. The kingdoms of Israel – the Kingdoms of
their Messianic glories. Well, bro, they are a joke in the end. God
actually cares if you love him, and your life is focused on him. I
promote Daniel the Seraphim ministries and pursue my agenda of Realm
rulership with me and Vally boy, but I don’t forget the fundamental
truth of who runs the show. And, in fact, I sort of have a point to
prove on this issue on my own particular judgement day later
on.’
‘Really?’ queried Callodyn.
‘Yeh, and I
think you will probably get the point. Oh, I won’t be too harsh on
the issue. I know their failings. But I do intend to put some pillars
of pride in their place. I definitely intend to do that. To show just
what I really think of many of the egomaniacs out there who really
think that they should run the show.’
Callodyn
looked at Daniel for a while, thought on Elihu from the book of Job,
and smiled to himself. Yeh, Danny seemed to get the point. He seemed
to get the point exactly.
* * * * *
‘All
in a rush,’ Callodyn thought to himself. ‘Visitors all of a
sudden in a rush. Well, here we go. Earth again.’
Gabriel
stood next to Callodyn. ‘Are you ready?’
‘Yes.’
‘Here
we go.’
* * * * *
Abraham was a
content, happy and blessed old soul. Father of a number of nations,
including his blessed Israel, Abraham did indeed like the attention
he often received, but he remembered to praise his God for it had
been his faithfulness through the good times and the bad which had
been the cause of his glory.
His grand-son, Jacob,
often known as Israel, hung with him a lot. They chatted about this
and that subject, mostly over family dinners, and usually discussed
the future of the world.
The family lived on Televon,
also known as Televere, in a world of the spiritual universe, as it
was called, which in nature was very similar to that of life on earth
itself, with just a slightly less solid bodily feeling, and a larger
diminishment in the feeling of bodily pain, which was deemed a
necessary requirement for eternal life. Oh, in the end, you could
feel pain – but it would never be like the pain able to be felt on
earth – and there was a bodily limit as well. Pain still served its
purposes, usually that of bodily preservation, but life and the focus
was different in the eternal.
The Royal family of
Televon was a Jewish Royal family, Albert Rothchild the long serving
King of the planet. He was a descendant of David, the Messiah, who
usually resided in the Realm of Eternity. Albert was a pleasant and
happy enough King, quite popular and doing his job well. Abraham met
him often, as this was deemed appropriate, and the Grand-fatherly
figure was apparently quite dear to Albert.
Televon
had a number of Continents, and Abraham resided often in various
places upon them. Today, though, he was visiting his grand-son to a
number of generations, Boaz, and his wife Ruth, in
Paradision.
‘Democracy, Boaz? You favour a change to
Democracy for Televon? You are not happy with Albert?’
Boaz
took another sip of his hot chocolate, and stared into the flames,
late on the cold winter’s day. ‘It is true, Abraham, Albert is a
good king. A very good king. He does his job well, setting a good
example for the Jewish, Noahide and Unitarian Christian population on
the planet. And, yes, we all need good examples.’
‘Then
why speak of Democracy?’
‘A conviction, father. A personal
conviction.’
‘Which is?’
Boaz stared into the
fire, took another sip of hot chocolate, but remained silent. Abraham
stared at him for a while, waiting on his answer, but Boaz said and
continued to say nothing.
They sat there for quite a
while, and still Boaz hadn’t spoken. Eventually Abraham, feeling
tired, rose to his feet and said, ‘Well, Boaz. It has been a long
day. And this old man’s bones need a rest. If you will excuse me.’
He began to leave the room, and was about to head out the doorway,
when Boaz spoke.
‘God.’
Abraham stopped in his
tracks, turned, looked at Boaz, and responded. ‘God what?’
‘God,’
repeated Boaz.
Abraham thought about that for a few moments.
‘And that is your conviction, is it? God?’
‘Yes,’
responded Boaz.
Abraham came and sat back down. Looked
at his son, and poured out the cold hot chocolate into a mug and
started sipping. He also started eating some marshmallows, enjoying
them.
He turned to him. ‘God what?’
‘Our
loyalty. Our devotion. Our inscribing HIM as King. Not one of our
own. God first. Not Albert Rothchild. Not even David Rothchild. God.
God number one.’
Abraham considered that, and responded in
his wisdom. ‘But God is first amongst us, Boaz. We all know that.
God is the father of Israel, the father of mankind. He is enshrined
in our hearts in the most significant way, above all earthly
princes.’
Boaz remained silent for a while, and
spoke again. ‘Callodyn spoke with me once, about his brother
Daniel’s words. He quoted a section of 1 Samuel. It was
interesting. And he said, Israel doesn’t really bother with this
passage that much. Not that concerned. Haven keeps this in mind,
though. We have a plan for that passage. A long term
passage.’
‘Mmm,’ responded Abraham, and went to
pick up a Tanakh from the bookcase against the wall. He found the
passage Boaz mentioned, read it carefully, and put the Tanakh back
down. ‘It says God told us to go ahead with a king anyway. It is
still his idea as well. Why worry?’
‘It is not about
worrying. God will never complain about Messiah. I know that.’
‘Then
your point.’
‘It is unwritten. It is an unwritten…well,
not even an unwritten command. Not even an unwritten law. It is…an
unwritten truth. Unless we put God first. Unless we inscribe God as
our King… Well are we really his child? Are we really his
servants?’
Abraham spoke again. ‘We need hierarchies,
Boaz. The priesthood functions on this, and that is divinely
ordained. I feel, in overall context of the Tanakh, you make this
point too much of a big deal. A king serves a practical purpose. A
realistic role. We can not betray our Messiah. That would not be
right.’
‘No. Perhaps not. Perhaps not. But sometimes I
wonder,’ responded Boaz.
Abraham stared at his son, felt the
tiredness in his heart again, and excused himself.
It
had been a long day, and as he drifted up the stairs, thinking on his
love for God from his own heart, he gave a little thought to Boaz’s
concerns, but was resolved that the way things were was the way
things should be. If it ain’t broke don’t fix it. And, falling to
sleep, dreams coming in, the slumber of Abraham was sound and
contented on that truth.
Chapter
Three
Ruth was down at the small stream that ran
through much of Paradision, fishing for yabbies, which were common
here. Her new child, Dominic, 8 years old, was with her, in the
stream with his net, hunting out the yabbies. She smiled at him
often, and encouraged him to keep on hunting. Countless times before
she had been here at this stream with her new children to Boaz,
sometimes swimming, sometimes yabby hunting, sometimes on a picnic,
or sometimes just escaping the house. It was not far from their home,
just a few hundred metres, but her little family visited often,
usually in summer, but it was a bright and cheerful winters day
today, the sun beamed strongly, and little Dominic had been quite
insistent.
As he searched and hunted, Ruth relaxed,
and laid back, picking up her bible, to look at the section Abraham
and Boaz had been discussing fervently that morning. In 1
Samuel.
‘…….For it is not you they have
rejected, but it is me they have rejected as king……’
She
had read those words several times now. Several, several times. And
then she reached a conclusion. It was a matter of formality, mostly,
anyway. The hearts of the populace were not maddened with Rothchild
fervour. The populace, of Televon anyway, enthroned Jehovah in their
hearts, and he was God, above all kings and princes.
‘I
am sure we know this truth,’ she thought to herself. ‘I am sure
we know this truth.’
* * * * *
Gabriel
sat in the overseers office of Zaphon, in the heart of Zaphora,
staring out the window at the city outside, bored. Well, not bored
exactly. Not bored. Perhaps restless. Perhaps indifferent. Perhaps
lacking any real motivation to do anything real. But, all things
considered, so he concluded to himself, probably bored.
‘Well,
may as well do something,’ he thought to himself.
He
grabbed his yo-yo, went out to Cindradel, appointed her to take his
calls and messages for the day, and said he would be gone all
afternoon and not to worry. And then he was gone.
* *
* * *
The two of them floated on the northern private
section of Golden Lake, reserved just for the Seraphim. Out on the
rest of the lake, with the now enormous population of Zaphora and the
Realm of Eternity, floated countless souls, all pursuing their dreams
of being on Golden Lake, the most famous lake in the
world.
Aquariel was floating, with floaties on her
arms and legs, on the water, staring up at the warm sky, in bliss.
Gabriel was not far from her, on a board, paddling around happily,
just enjoying the warm weather. It was bliss.
They had
chatted with Florel briefly, who was watching over Glimmersphon in
Dameriel’s current absence, and arranged a private dinner at
Glimmersphon that night. She had some guests with them at the moment,
but the Overseers suite, as it had come to be called, up behind
Glimmersphon, very expensive to rent, was currently vacant. Gabriel
agreed to the sum, and he and Aquariel would be spending the night
there, happily ensconced in each other’s arms. The two of them,
now, sort of, were together. Not officially. Aquariel seemed to be of
the opinion that they were not likely destined for such closeness, as
such understood it, but Gabriel persevered anyway.
He
decided to touch the bottom so, getting off the board into the water,
he dived down, and shortly touched the bottom, gathering a handful of
sand. He came up, got back on his board, and decided to bother his
twin. He swam over, touched her on her arm, and she righted herself
and looked at him.
‘Hello sweetie.’
‘Having fun,
Gabby?’
‘You bet.’ He stared out over the lake, and
looked again at her. He had something on his mind. ‘Tonight. You
know. Tonight.’
She smiled. ‘Tonight what?’
He
came out with it. ‘Make love to me. Properly. Get pregnant. Have
another. You don’t mind that with me, do you. Occasionally, even
your twin is ok. That is what you said.’
She looked at him,
right into his eyes, almost his soul. She then adjusted herself
again, floating again on the still and calm waters, whatever thoughts
on her mind beyond the comprehension of the Archangel Gabriel.
*
* * * *
She stood before him, in her nightgown, while
he was on the presidential bed. And, still a little embarrassed,
despite having made love to him many times before, she took off the
gown and stood before him naked. ‘This IS what you wanted, isn’t
it Gabriel? You did mean it, didn’t you?’
He nodded,
looking over her fit and nubile body. His member hardened quite
quickly and he motioned for her to come forth. And she came forth,
and he took her, and they were passionate.
It was 3
weeks later, and the doctor confirmed Gabriel’s hearts wishes.
Aquariel was pregnant again. And the baby was doing well. Later that
day she looked up at the ceiling, resting on her bed. He was
persistent. She would give him that much. He was persistent.
*
* * * *
‘Relax, huh? Do not much? Flubbergust.
Flubber bloody flubbergust. Mmm.’
‘What was that, Danny?’
queried Ariel.
Daniel, sitting on the couch, anxious to do
something, so relaxed had he been forced to be by God’s words, said
nothing, but continued to mumble. ‘Flubber bloody
flubbergust.’
Ariel looked concerned, but returned her gaze
to the television set. Whatever was on her twin’s mind, she was
sure he would work it out.
Daniel looked at her,
mumbling to himself, got to his feet and went to the fridge in the
next room, took out cold pizza, mandatory Daniel food, sipped on Coca
Cola, and continued mumbling to himself. And then, suddenly, ‘Mmm.
Mmm. Mmm. Well, he doesn’t want MY agenda. Perhaps an older idea.
An older project. Mmm. Yes, I’ll visit now.’ He walked into his
bedroom, looked at himself in the mirror, noting his current clothing
was good enough, decided he didn’t really need to bring a change of
clothes and so on in a suitcase, so grabbed his wallet, walked in and
kissed Ariel and said. ‘I’ll be back in a few weeks – probably.
Going to Televon.’
‘Why?’ she asked, confused.
‘Umm.
Something to do. Something to do. Well. Seeya,’ and as she watched,
somewhat stunned, he exited the house, walked down to the bus stop,
sat there waiting about 20 minutes, and caught the bus into Zaphon
central. And then, off to the portal, and away to Televon, for he was
again an angel on a mission.
* * * * *
Zebulun
was a happy enough Jewish man. Favoured by God as son of Jacob, the
father of Israel, he was the head of one of the 12 official tribes of
Israel. Of course, there were numerous tribes more now, as Jacob had
continued to have children in the heavenlies, but he and his brothers
were designated the official ones. The religion they practiced, now,
had come to be known as Judaism. Certainly, Samaritan, Karaite and
the various denominations of Israel were to a degree separate, but
they were usually united under the Jewish banner and the figure of
Judah, Jacob’s son, who they would praise in accordance with the
scriptural decree, and seemingly had accepted, through messiah, as
their leader. But now, sitting in his abode on Televon, entertaining
Daniel Daly Rothchild, the Seraphim Daniel, he was curious as to
Daniel’s suggestions of Zebulun’s potential
ambitions.
‘Karaite Zebulunism, Daniel? Karaite
Zebulunism?’
‘Or just plain old Zebulunism, as it can be
called in time. But the Karaite idea is a good enough foundation
stone for the movement.’
‘And the adherents to this
movement, as you call it?’
‘Your father of a bloody
enormous tribe now, aren’t you?’
‘Yes. Yes I am. So this
is a ‘New Agenda’ proposal?’
‘Sort of. But it is not
exactly that new an idea, nor new in its religious basis. Karaism is
ancient.’
‘Indeed it is,’ conceded Zebulun.
‘Have
Rabbis. Have Hakhams. Dress them in, well this is my suggestion, but
dress them in red instead of the traditional black. Be original. Be
an interesting alternative to what one day may become a bit of a
stale and predictable religion. Do something new Zebulun.’
‘And
will not Hashem object to this?’
‘Do you think he will
now? In light of his words about the New Agenda? In fact, well I
reckon he likes ambition well enough if the ambition is grounded. I
am sure you will make a firm foundation.’
‘I will have to
talk it over with father.’
‘Will you go ahead if he
approves?’
Zebulun looked at him, and acknowledged the point
of new life and new endeavours. It may as well be him.
‘Sure,
Dan. If father approves, no problems. It doesn’t sound like too
much of a problem, especially these days.’
‘Good to hear.
Well, if you will excuse me then, I must get going. Things to still
do here on Televon.’
‘Sure, Danny. Good to see you.
Remember, drop around some time. It is always good to catch
up.’
‘Will do, Zebulun.’ They shook hands, and Daniel
left, leaving Zebulun sitting in his lounge, thinking things over.
Shortly he walked over to his bookcase, took down the work ‘The
Theology of Judaism’ a work he himself had written, and thought on
things. The book had been well received all those years ago when he
had released it. And, in many years of consideration, he’d had time
to review things. Could it be the basis of Zebulunism? Could he, for
want of better words, start again? Could he?’
* * *
* *
Jacob looked at his son. His blessed son Zebulun.
Was there any point in even objecting in the current climate?
‘You
have my blessing, Zebulun. I am sure you know what to do by now. Be
original, and do something new. But don’t forget your roots.’
‘I
won’t father. Thanks.’
And that was that.
*
* * * *
Reuben laughed. Shook his head saying ‘Daniel,
Daniel, Daniel,’ and laughed again. And then he looked at him, and
gradually stopped laughing.
‘Mmm. Reubenism. Mmm.
Interesting.’
* * * * *
When Gad
arrived later that week, Jacob looked at him in the entrance way to
his home, 11th and probably last son on the list, as Judah would
probably not be coming, Jacob said ‘No problems, Gad,’ and Gad
looked at him, a little puzzled and said, ‘Ah, oh. Well, Cool.
Thanks dad.’
* * * * *
It was half a
year later. A full 6 months, and Judah, son of Jacob, was feeling
just a bit upset, but had gotten over it. The amount of resignation
letters he had received from various high ranking rabbis and
officials in his assemblies and synagogues, all apparently children
patrilineally from the other tribes, which was the current Karaite
vogue way of reckoning tribal affiliation, was just too many to
count. Judaism had shrunk – remarkably so. In fact, alarmingly so.
King David and David Rothchild had been visiting that afternoon, both
somewhat freaked out, and Judah had consoled his children and said,
‘Well, you know, whatever will be will be,’ and they had shared a
beer in his basement bar, drowned their sorrows, and started to get
over it.’
‘Life goes on,’ said Judah, and King David
said ‘Amen to that.’
* * * * *
A
very pissed of Davidic Messiah by the Name of David Rothchild headed
up, in a very cross mood, his twin Meludiel reluctantly following, up
to the front door of Danielphon. He knocked. He knocked twice. And
under his breath he was muttering ‘I will give him bloody
flubbergust. Grrr.’
Daniel opened. Saw his company.
And, suddenly, smiled very broadly. ‘Ooohhhh. Ambriel. Lovely to
see you. Please, come in.’
Ambriel grumbled, motioned to
Meludiel to precede him, and walked in, not before giving Daniel a
stare of death, which Daniel returned with the most pleasant of
smiles.
They came to the living room, Ariel brought
out a pitcher of lemonade, and the four of them sat there, drinking
courteously, while the snarl on Ambriel lips seemed to curl up even
more so.
‘Now, dearest Ambriel. Why the
visit?’
Ambriel looked at him, the impregnable aura
of absolute mockery, and went cold. ‘One day, Danny Danny Daly. One
day, a big bird will drop from the sky, and gobble you all up.’
‘Big
bird himself? The yellow freak? He doesn’t fly, does he?’
The
snarl continued.
Meludiel spoke to Ariel. ‘The
lemonade is lovely, Ariel.’
‘Thank you,’ responded
Ariel.
Daniel looked suddenly happy. ‘Hey, Ambriel.
How go Messiah Ministries? Numbers? Are they on the
increase?’
‘They WERE!’ he exclaimed,’ very,
very pissed off like.
‘Whatever do you mean, dear, dear
brother?’
‘Well, it’s like this, you see. Some idiot
called Zebulun – and I mean a bloody idiot to boot – some idiot
called Zebulun is happily progressing in Judaism, keeping the faith,
walking with God, not being stupid and, lo and behold, he suddenly is
granted this vision, apparently. A vision of glory in which the Holy
Zebulunite Kingdom of Glory, with dear old Zebulun enthroned as King,
is the new reality for the truly holy tribe of Israel. And, lo, not 2
days into this grand and great revelation, then certain other tribal
leaders are likewise visited upon with similar and thus, apparent,
divine revelations. And I sayeth to myself, what does father Jacob
make of these revelations. And father Jacob spoke to me kind and true
words and sayeth, there was this fellow, Daniel I think his name, who
mighteth be the sourceth for such divine truths, or words to those
effect – I can not say for sure.’
‘Ahhhh,’ responded
Daniel. ‘Well, yes. There are a lot of Daniel’s.’
‘Yes.
Yes. Yes.’ Ambriel did not know what to say.
‘Say,
Ambriel. Let us walk. Come, out to the verandah. I have some
advice.’
Ambriel shook his head, but stood, walking with
Daniel to the side verandah of Danielphon.
Daniel
began. ‘You are quite intelligent, dear brother. Quite intelligent.
But a fool and his holiness are sometimes the playground of the
devil’s of evil.’
‘Too true,’ muttered Ambriel, with a
force of hostility quite unlike him.
‘But don’t take it to
heart, dear brother. Don’t take it to heart. A word of advice.
People don’t always follow the right. They don’t always follow
the true. They don’t always follow the holy. Sometimes they follow
the love. The humour. The joke. The relief from there divine
frustrations in conforming to a system they had no real choice in the
beginning with anyway. Now, part of being in the hearts of men, is
this. Understanding the hearts of men. And part of ruling the hearts
of men is this.’
Ambriel looked at him. ‘Yes?’
Daniel
looked at him, silently for a few moments, before responding with a
gentle smile on his face. ‘Now that would be telling, wouldn’t it
AMBRIEL? Mmm.’
And so, looking at him, Ambriel softened. He
smiled. He got the joke. He took it in good humour. And he left,
generally contented that Daniel, as far as Daniel really was
concerned in the end anyway, had done the right thing as far as
Daniel thought right.
And in the throneroom of Zaphon,
a pleasant mixed flame of scarlet and purple burned brightly for a
few moments, let off a glorious parade of sparks, before returning to
a pleasant and steady blue.
* * * * *
Jesus
looked at Callodyn’s culling. A culling. A culling. Mmm. It had a
long-term reputation now, the Gospel of Jesus of Nazareth, as the
document was called. A number of Haven offspring movements held to
the document, populated by mostly ex-Christians who were of the firm
opinion that Jesus was not in fact the messiah, but who had a
fascination, an interest, or, apparently as Callodyn had stated, a
genuine love for the Jewish Rabbi, Yeshua Bar Yosef.
For
a long time now Jesus had to face up to the fact that David Rothchild
had been God’s promised Messiah, but equally, for a long time now,
the Christian Church had maintained, in general, a two messiah
position, and that Jesus, being the so called Pseudo-Christ, was a
messianic figure intended for the establishment of Christianity,
Christianity being a preordained and preplanned religion of God. For
so long this had been the status quo. But things, to Jesus, had
changed. They had changed.
He had listened to King
David’s words, in that conversation. Disputed them, but listened.
Listened carefully. And he had thought upon the issue. It was long
ago on earth, a time with the apostles, he had been glorified? Hadn’t
he? Hadn’t he? Wasn’t he truly the Son of God? Wasn’t he?
Wasn’t he?
He looked at the document – the text –
the book – the gospel, and sat down to read it. As he knew well,
all Christ references were gone, all crucifixion references were
gone, nearly every contentious passage with the Pharisees had been
neglected. It was, in the words of Callodyn, the sanitized, Kosher
Gospel, acceptable to God and men, for the acceptable and compliant
ambitions of Jesus of Nazareth towards his desired Church of
Glory.
And now the New Agenda had come to pass. Now
things were alive again to possibilities, to new life, to new
thought. And, even in Israel, the wisdom of Daniel had been listened
to as they were about to really diversify somewhat and put some new
life into an old beast.
He looked at the Gospel in his
hand – he looked at it seriously. Some truths, in the end, never
really changed that much anyway. Some truths did just that –
remained true.
He would visit a ‘Jesus of Nazareth
Ministry’ assembly hall. He would visit one, have a chat, get to
know this flock. Get to know this flock which didn’t even bother
baptising, but accepted some of his ministry and, so far, were called
acceptable by a significant enough number of, otherwise hostile,
Jewish organisations.
Would he change from his
Christian ambitions? He doubted that any time soon. But he would like
into this idea of Callodyn, give it some thought and, perhaps,
perhaps, lay down some eternal roots.
* * * *
*
‘Blaze. How about the name Blaze?’
Aquariel
looked at the baby in her arms, smiling up at her. It was a beautiful
boy. A beautiful baby boy.
‘Ok, Gabby. Blaze it
is.’
Aquariel looked at the baby in her arms and said,
softly, ‘My little Blaze of Glory.’
* * * *
*
‘Don Bongiovi! Are you related to Jon? Hey
Gabriel?’
‘Archangel Gabriel looked at the young Cherubim,
barely 15, who was sporting a ‘Bon Jovi – New Jersey’
T-Shirt.
‘Umm, well, yeh. Very closely in fact. He is a
grand-father of sorts.’
‘REALLY? But aren’t you sort of
Jewish as well?’
‘Uh, yeh. True. There is a very strong
Jewish link. Mother, actually.’
‘Whoah!’ said the young
Cherubim. ‘And you named your latest kid Blaze? Was that after
Blaze of Glory?’
‘Well, sort of. Hey, yes I am a fan of
the band. Not the biggest – sort of got into music from my own
generation. But, yeh, theyr’e alright.’
‘Is it true
Aquariel is descended from Madonna? The pop singer, I mean. Not
Jesus’ mum.’
Gabriel nodded. ‘Yes. Ms Rosetti is a
direct descendant. Not too many generations either.’
‘Your
old band. The Bongiovi All-Stars. Did you get the name from Jon’s
early project?’
Gabriel smiled. ‘Yeh, I suppose. I mean I
did know he used that in Runaway’s recording as the guys who
produced the record, but it wasn’t ever trademarked or anything
like that, and I figured they wouldn’t mind. The ‘Bongiovi All
Stars’ sounded different enough from ‘Bon Jovi’ that I figured
we’d get an original enough audience.’
The Cherubim
produced a ‘Bongiovi All Stars’ Cd, and said ‘Could you sign
it, Gabriel? I actually like your music. I know it is not traditional
chart stuff, a lot more folksy and old beatles style, but I like the
stuff. Its ok. It rocks.’
‘Thanks kid,’ and Don Bongiovi
signed his life away in a request that was not that common these day
– fandom.
When the kid and his parents had left,
Gabriel, just for the heck of it, opened up his myspace band webpage.
He looked at the total hits – 36,789,489,242,152 total hits. Hey,
not bad. Nowhere near the big guys, but time had certainly done its
thing. And, just for the heck of it, he brought up the world charts
of album sales, typed in his band name, and checked their success.
Position 46,723 on the album charts featured ‘The Bongiovi All
Stars’, their debut CD. Yeh, they had been consistently in the
40,000s for a long time from his memory. Not too bad. A hell of a lot
of competition, and for the type of album it was he knew his personal
fame want a long way in getting it such glory. It possibly wouldn’t
even make the top million otherwise. He knew it was a traditional
sort of album, one which had its moments and appealed to a certain
audience, some of them quite loyal. But it simply didn’t have the
impact of the bigger albums from the various superstars. I didn’t
compete in that way. But, that didn’t matter. So what. The band
retired aeons ago, happy with 7 albums and a moderate amount of
success. And, funnily enough, the sales from those albums for Gabriel
personally was were about 90% of his income still came from. He’d
never really bothered with business, shares, rentals, or any of the
enduring avenues of permanent income. There was way too much
competition to even bother for an angel of his standing. Mainly, he
worked, spent the regular income on his life, and left it at that. He
did have a few other projects were royalties came from, his 2 novels
and a few minor poems in various anthologies which still sold. That
made up the 100%. Well, not technically. Technically the overseers
position, his current job, made up a little over 1% of his income.
That said, it paid enormously well, and had to, but with the
population beyond counting out there of people in that big old
universe, even position 46,723 for one CD on the world charts brought
an amazing income. More than he could ever possibly dream to
realistically spend.
He knew many didn’t, in fact,
work at all now. A lot of stars lived off royalties which were pretty
much assured from key web-links and, in truth, simply popular product
which sold itself. But, ultimately, that seemed to be the ultimate
purpose in life, anyway. Eternal retirement from active service, and
off to the ways of various pastimes. Gabriel, though, had looked at
the simple enduring fact that actual work itself could also be a
pastime. He was a strong angel, had been made that way, and felt a
degree of personal responsibility for his birthright and reputation.
Thus he worked. He planned on being the overseer of Zaphon until the
million years were up, and then, in truth, if it was available, of to
the second disc of Terraphon for eternal overseer duties there. At
that point he didn’t expect to work that heavily, mainly a few days
a month, but it was in his nature to do something useful and somewhat
challenging. Not too much of it ultimately, but a few days a month
was actually enjoyable to him. Something useful to do, and something
he in fact desired to do. Such was life.
But he
certainly didn’t need the money.
* * * * *
Andrew
held Jessica’s hand. Here they were. Brave new world.
Canbraphora.
* * * * *
‘The doctor
said it was a very rare form of rabies. Only transferable by certain
species of bats from Mitraphora. They have ordered a drug, said they
could possibly manufacture it if they needed to, but that the drugs
would be sooner.’
Andrew shrugged. He hated dealing with
doctors. Hated it. Jessica had thus gone out when the doctor had
rang, heard his report, and shared the news with him. ‘Will the
sweating continue at nights?’
‘They should gradually
reduce over the next few days, but it will stay in your system and
future problems could occur without the treatment.’
He came
over, kissed her on the cheek and said, ‘Well, whatever. I guess I
can leave off studies for a few days.’
Jessica sat
down on a couch in there rented unit, picked up a magazine, and
Andrew, having been surfing the net, thought on returning to his
purchasing of certain items from eBay, instead picked up the remote,
flicked on the TV, and sat there watching ‘Full House’ of all
things. He zonked out, lost in his own thoughts, lost in the comedy
somewhat, when Jessica spoke up.
‘We had a visitor this
morning, Andy. When you were out.’
‘Yeh, that’s good,’
he said, not terribly interested in the conversation.
‘It
was a certain girl by the name of Bianca. Said she knew you. In fact,
I do remember you talking about her.’
He looked at the tv,
then his brain caught up with the conversation. Bianca? Oh boy. Her
again.
‘Uh, what did she want, Jess?’
‘Didn’t
say. Just that she wanted to catch up again. Talk about old times.
Said she missed you.’
He looked over at Jessica, who was
leafing through a magazine, not looking at him. He looked carefully
at her, but decided to lose interest in the conversation. He was sure
she would not be concerned, really. I mean, nothing to be concerned
about, he thought to himself. Nothing to be concerned
about.
‘Well,’ she said.
‘Well
what?’
‘Are you going to see her?’
‘Did she
leave a number?’
She put down the magazine, went to the
fridge, and took a sticky note off the fridge and handed it to him,
and then returned to her magazine.
He looked at the number. It
was her old mobile. Still hadn’t changed. In fact he had that in
his little black book.
Jessica turned to him. ‘Do you still
like her?’
Andrew gave her a somewhat shocked look, but said
nothing. There was nothing to say. He looked at the note in his hand,
crumpled it up, but did put it in his back pocket.
‘I have
to go, Jess. I know I should be inside, but it is a bit stuffy in
here. I’ll probably go down to the pub, or something. Ok?’
‘Sure,’
she said, waving her hand.
As he pulled out from their
driveway, driving along towards no yet particular location, he was
well aware of the crumpled note in his back pocket. Well aware
indeed.
* * * * *
Bianca was dressed in
yellow, the dress she had been in when they had been particularly
passionate one night, and she smiled warmly at him. He knew, really,
that he probably shouldn’t have called her. He probably shouldn’t.
Should he.
‘So, how the heck have you been, Andy
boy? Boy, have I missed you.’
He smiled, nervously. ‘Yeh,
sure. Well, Canbraphora rocks, B. Canberra 37 has a buzz we like. It
is why we chose it.’
‘Yeh, Canberra 37. When your mum said
Canberra, I assumed the big one. It took me ages to go through the
internet searches to find you.’
‘Right.’
‘You
didn’t want to be found?’
‘Uh, no. No, it isn’t that.
It was just sort of a new life me and Jessica had planned. I guess
that was it.’
Bianca nodded her head, and took a sip of the
pint of beer. ‘So, Andrew. You and Jessica. Married yet?’
‘No.
Not yet.’
‘But you have proposed, haven’t you? I mean,
she is the one, isn’t she?’
He looked at her. ‘So that
is what it is about? Your not just here to catch up?’
She
looked at him, took another sip of beer, but did not answer. Instead
she changed the subject.
‘You know, back in Zaphona, before
you left, I was going through issues. Issues of the heart. Issues of
judgement. I was at Elenniel and Jonah’s place, and Ambriel was
there. He said a few words to me. Said people can be so judgemental
at times. Sometimes so serious, caught up in personal rules. Not
flowing in a gentle spirit.’
Andrew stared at her. ‘Your
point?’
‘I was perhaps a bit to harsh in the way I judged
you. Didn’t accept you on your own terms. For yourself. For the man
I was starting to like anyway – despite myself.’
Andrew
nodded. ‘I’m glad you resolved that. I suppose I was cut up
somewhat, but I moved on. I found Jess.’
She smiled at him.
‘Yes. Jess,’ and took another sip of beer.
They
sat there in silence for a few moments, not saying anything, Bianca
smiling at him somewhat, and then she spoke. ‘Hey. There is a dance
floor down the back, looking unused. And a jukebox. Dance with my,
Andy boy. Dance with me.’
He thought on objecting, but she
grabbed his arm, tugged on it, and brought him down to the back of
the pub. She put in a coin, and ‘All I want is You’ by U2 started
playing. And she put her arms around him, looked into his eyes, and
they danced slowly. Slowly. Slowly.
Chapter
Four
‘Susan!’ exclaimed Daniel. ‘It’s Susan!’
That’s it, isn’t it?’
Ariel looked over at him, suddenly
alarmed. ‘Eh, what did you say?’
He stared at her. ‘Your
human name. Susan. Susan, something or another. I can’t remember. I
can’t remember exactly. You were a singer. Um. A Christian singer.
Susan. Oh, for the life of me.’
‘Well, if you must know,
the albums are still available. There are no photos of me in the
cover, but they have been released.’
He looked at her. ‘I
don’t think we ever met on earth, but I had some of your
music.’
She looked at him, squarely. ‘I guess God must
have provided that for you. I never knew you. Never even heard of
you, but it is a large world, isn’t it.’
‘Yes.’
‘Of
course, you found Sharlamane. Jessica Goldstein. You married
her.’
Daniel suddenly looked at a photograph on the wall.
Sharlamane. His cherubim sister, Sharlamane. His deepest human love.
It had been so bloody long now since he had seen her. So bloody long.
In fact, although he had seen that photo on the wall countless times,
he had never made a connection about his past love, his past
association. It was like she was lost in the annals of history, a
forgotten maiden, once his love, now gone forever.
‘Do you
know were she is now? Were Jessica lives?’
‘On Televon.
She emailed me a century ago. Asked how you were. She left an
address. I think I probably still have the email, if you want to
know.’
Daniel looked at her, his heart suddenly fluttering.
‘Yes. Can I see it?’
Ariel stood, walked over to the PC,
and opened up her email account. She did a search, and finding
Sharlamane’s last email in her personal folder, clicked it open and
let Daniel read.
He wrote down the address in his little black
book and looked at Ariel. ‘I don’t have anything on at the
moment. No working commitments, nothing. You don’t mind, do you? It
will probably be as much as a year, but I really need to catch up
with her.’
Ariel smiled. ‘Its ok, Danny. I
understand.’
Daniel nodded, went to his bedroom, packed a
quick suitcase, grabbed his wallet, and came back out. Ariel was
standing at the door. He came over, and looked into her eyes. ‘You
know, don’t you. You know by now, don’t you.’
‘Know
what?’
‘I do play the field, somewhat. But only somewhat.
Only a small percentage of the time, now. I think, in the way I do
love Sharlamane and the way I do love Meludiel, that such
realities…Well that will never change.’
‘I didn’t
think it would.’
‘But you do know, don’t
you?’
‘What?’
‘Who my first love is. Who my
priority, when all is said and done, really is.’
She looked
at him, smiled to herself, and kissed him on the cheek. ‘Go on,
Danny Boy. I will see you when I see you.’
‘Thanks!’ he
said, kissed her own cheek, and disappeared out the door, off to the
bus stop, and away to an old love.
* * * *
*
Abraham was visiting Eber at one of the Hebrew
Gatherings.
‘You know, Abraham. I have always wondered, out
of all the Hebrews, why you? I have surmised, often, that it was
probably preplanned destiny. I have surmised that. The scriptures
seem to teach this truth, so maybe you were just made for it.’
‘Or
he found something he liked in me?’
‘Or you just got
lucky,’ finished Eber. Abraham smiled at that comment.
They
both took a sip of their beverages, and looked out at the dancing in
the large hall. It was Eber’s traditional Hebrew Celebrations on
Televon, and it was a good turnout as usual.
‘This
Karaism, I hear of Abraham. This new development in it. Zebulun. My
boy Zebbie. Going solo. And then, apparently, the other lads taking
him up on the idea. What is going on, son?’
Abraham
responded carefully. ‘Well, it was Daniel, David Rothchild’s
brother. He got the ball rolling on that issue.’
‘Oh,
Daniel Daly Rothchild. The adopted one. The Seraphim.’
‘That’s
him. He visited Zebulun and proposed the idea to him. Zebulun asked
Jacob, who gave him a blessing.’
‘And you don’t
object?’
‘I was promised to be a father of many nations. I
am sure Zebulun is well old enough and experienced enough by now to
know what he is doing. All of them are.’
Eber nodded. ‘And
what about you, son. Do you have any more ambitions for any of your
other children? You must have thousands of them by now.’
‘They
are content as Hebrews. It is generally the tradition they
follow.’
‘And the circumcision? Do you still enforce it to
the degree of the past? I have heard that now it is out of
vogue.’
‘We still circumcise our children. Sarah insists
on it, but the other wives are of mixed opinion. Some insist that I
leave the children alone. I don’t worry about it now.’
‘Has
HE commented.’
‘The theophany drops around occasionally.
We discussed it. He told me not to worry. Said it was primarily a
human covenant of earth. That in this world beyond earth, it can be
continued, but life is just what life is. Tradition is important, but
so is the heart of men.’
‘So you don’t worry.’
‘Little
point in losing sleep.’
Eber nodded.
Abraham
continued on the theme. ‘Oh, it hasn’t stopped with the tribes.
David Rothchild emailed me. Let me know of an idea he got from a Joel
Rosenberg.’
‘What?’
‘Joel has formed Karaite
Rosenberg faith. Faith for the Rosenberg clan – the Rosenberg
family. And David took an instant liking to the idea and formed
Karaite Rothchild faith. Said, considering the enormous universal
size of the Rothchild clan now anyway, that they may as well.’
Eber
nodded. ‘That actually sounds like a good idea, son. They will only
continue to grow. They will only get larger. Denominationalising it,
for want of a better word, is really the only practical idea in the
end anyway. I think that is just probably reality.
‘You are
probably right in the end, old man. You are probably right.’
*
* * * *
Noah was having a conversation with Adam and
Eve. The parents of mankind were traditionally ‘Free Spirits’ and
Adamic faith stressed as usually having little real requirements –
‘People take it as they want amongst me seed’, Adam commented to
Noah. Noah had come to the realization gradually, which had been
forming in his mind for many years, that as he had long assumed in as
much as many Rainbow Torah Noahides accepted only the Rainbow Torah
as their book of Divine Judgement, so likewise Adamides enjoyed their
spiritual freedoms, responsible only to the laws of the land of the
current day, to which they usually complied, in Adam’s own word.
‘We don’t really have specific commands to live by, Noah. How can
I put it,’ said Eve. ‘It is sort of like being just who you are.
Just how God made you. An alive being. Law has its place amongst
those who are not always choosing to be lawful. A person who
understands the real nature they are made to be – the holy image of
God they are made to be – does not so much need a law of moral
rules, but to simply love and respect ones fellow man. But, and this
is probably important, in our developed society with all its
infrastructures and complexities, unlike the Garden of Eden in its
simplicity, rules, of necessity, must develop. When it was just me
and Adam there were no rules against theft, because who exactly would
we steal from, if you know what I mean.’
Noah nodded. He
understood perfectly.
‘As society developed and became more
complex, rules and laws likewise developed. It all happens
naturally.’
‘As I have likewise assumed,’ responded
Noah.
‘But we are not, by nature, meant to be simply people
addicted to rules and a programmed way of life. We are free spirits,
not made to fit to a law, but laws developed to fit to us. To help us
– not to be a program we must follow or else.’
‘So you
dislike Israel’s Torah?’
‘They need it. They have
responsibilities. They don’t operate on the same level as us,’
responded Eve. ‘God chose them for a priestly role among our
children. As a rabbi would probably tell you, 7 represents the
natural order, which is the 7 days of creation, but 8 is the
circumcision which supposedly represents divine intervention on the
natural order for corrective purposes. Almost like a spiritual doctor
– made to heal mankind.’
‘But not for mankind. That is
not mankind’s destiny, only Israels?’
‘Correct,’
responded Adam. ‘The issue causes no end of trouble with a lot of
young kids in theological circles.’
‘Yes, I know,’
responded Noah. ‘A lot of rabbis still have problems as
well.’
‘There has never been clear consensus from Israel
about their role,’ commented Adam. ‘David says there job as a
people is to teach mankind to love God and to obey the 7 Noahide
laws.’
‘Yes. He does follow that tradition. Of course,
there is more freedom in the Rainbow Torah perspective, but David
seems to be of the opinion that the 7 law approach is the best one to
follow,’ responded Noah.’
‘It gives most Noahides
something to cling on to. A developed spiritual legal code they can
learn the rules for and abide by. Makes it very simple.’
‘And
the problem with that?’ queried Noah.
‘It is only for
younger Noahides. And mainly for younger Noahides who have not
developed terribly wise spiritual choices yet anyway. Those who need
to be told a set of laws to obey, rather than simply choosing to be a
holy and moral person, walking with God, loving neighbour, and trying
to do the right thing in general. If you have the right type of
education into spiritual things, you don’t need a list of laws to
tell you what the right thing to do is anyway. You will know. Your
wisdom and conscience will guide you. Your living spirit, alive to
God, will enlighten your mind on issues of right and wrong, and the
moment of time you are in and all other relevant factors. It is so
much more complex in many ways than a list of 7 rules which people
take for granted as the end of their requirements. But the rabbinic
system suits many people and in his own way David is quite wise for
promoting it.’
‘But you disagree mother?’
‘Not
really. Not disagree. It works as necessary for those it needs to
work for. For others, who have gotten over being a sinner, they don’t
need to be told when they have sinned or if they have sinned. They
are already responsibly going about their lives with God in their
heart.’
‘This sounds like young Callodyn’s
approach.’
‘Very similar to his viewpoints in many ways, I
would agree,’ stated Eve. ‘He focuses on the Rainbow Torah quite
strongly as a fundamental sort of text, and we would let him worry
less about Sabbaths and genealogies, but his heart is also in the
right place. I think, like 7 law Noahides, or Karaite Noahides, as
long as they are happy with there lives. Well, that is the main
thing.’
‘Amen mother. Amen.’
* * * *
*
Ruth was busy with Dominic, her son, washing him in
the bath, and talking to him about God. Dominic asked a question.
‘Does God Love us mummy?’
‘God loves you very much
Dominic. You are a special little man of his, very important to his
plans. You will meet him one day. We know his Theophany personally.
We are very blessed to be some of the very few lucky ones he gets
around to visiting regularly’.
‘Were does God exist mummy.
I mean, the spirit stuff?’
‘Oh Dominic. You do have so
many questions for me these days. I can’t ultimately answer that
question, Dommy. I can’t say. God does not reveal the truth about
the specifics of that question to any soul, no matter how many times
they ask. He just says he is spirit and life, and that is all we
know.’
‘Oh,’ said Dommy, and splashed around in the
tub.
Later on that evening, sitting on her bed,
Dominic fast asleep, she looked over at Boaz reading the paper. She
thought she might raise Dominic’s question. ‘So were does God
Almighty really exist, Boaz?’
Boaz put down his paper, and
looked at her. ‘Did Dominic ask that?’
She nodded. ‘I
didn’t really know how to answer him.’
‘You should have
tried the omnipresent answer. Christians use that constantly.’
‘I
know they do,’ said Ruth. ‘But we don’t really know for sure,
do we. We don’t really know.’
‘He just is,’ responded
Boaz. ‘It is what the rabbis say. God just is. I don’t know if we
really need to know more than that. Or if he ever really wants us to
know more than that.’
Ruth looked at him, got into the bed
and pulled the sheets up. ‘When the Theophany visits, I may ask
him.’
‘He might get that question a lot. I don’t think
we know yet, so he probably doesn’t say.’
‘I might ask
him anyway. To get some idea.’
‘Good luck. Now are you
ready to put out the light? I’m quite tired now.’
She
nodded, and as she stretched out, Boaz turning of the lamps, she
thought on God, her God, and wondered on that question. Just were did
God really exist anyway? Would she ever really know for sure.
*
* * * *
Jessica was finishing off the dinner
preparations, and Andrew walked into the kitchen, taking a piece of
lettuce, munching away. Jessica looked at Andrew and, cautiously, not
knowing if she wanted an answer, but asked him anyway ‘How did you
go the other night? What did you get up to?’
‘Oh, not
much,’ he responded cagily. He took a piece of tomato from the
salad and went back into the living room, sitting in front of the
television.
She steadied her gaze on him, thought very
carefully if she wanted to in fact ask the specific question she felt
she might need to, but forewent it. Perhaps...perhaps it would be
better if she didn’t ask. For reasons more than one.’
‘Ok,’
she said softly. She came over and sat next to him on the couch. ‘You
know, Andy. You know I love you, don’t you. You do know
that.’
‘Very much so,’ he said, turning to her, and
holding her hand.
‘If you want to tell me something, I can
be very understanding. I am a gentle heart, Andrew.’
Guilt
was suggesting it might need to speak. But guilt of what? He had
danced with Bianca. Nothing more. Did he have to make a confession to
an act of innocence. Did he?
‘Just that I love you too,
Jessica. Just that I love you too.’
She smiled, and he
kissed her on the cheek, but then, turned back to the television
show, and his own little world. She smiled at him. She smiled at him,
looked at the television briefly, and looked back at him. Then, the
subtlest of frowns graced her face. The subtlest. She stood, walked
into the bedroom, grabbed her handbag, and came back out.
‘Umm.
You don’t need me at the moment, do you sweetie?’ she asked, a
slight tinge of anger in her voice.
He looked at her. ‘Uh,
no. What? Are you going out? What about Dinner?’
She looked
at him for a few moments, looked at her handbag, and looked at the
clock and the calendar. 3 O clock. Still enough time in the day. She
returned her gaze to him. ‘Yes. Yes I am going out. Don’t wait
up. Have the dinner yourself. I. I will eat out’
He nodded
cautiously. ‘Sure, Jess. If that is what you want to do,’ and,
thinking no more of it, returned his gaze to the box.
She
left, gave him a stare from the doorway, and went away. She did not
return for quite some time.
Andrew, sitting there, staring at
the tv, started thinking. Started thinking about what had just
transpired. ‘Oh,’ he thought to himself. ‘Oh fuck.’
*
* * * *
Gabriel had decided, perhaps even against his
own better judgement, to come out of retirement and do a series of
live gigs with the ‘Bongiovi All-Stars’. He had contacted the man
himself, Jon Bon Jovi who suggested the gathering of the original
‘Bongiovi All-Stars’ with Gabriel’s band to do a series of live
gigs with the full crew from both bands combined on stage. Gabriel
had agreed to the idea, and the night of the first gig had come.
Aquariel was with him, and as the bands were backstage, warming up,
Gabriel was chatting with Jon. ‘Well, it should be a good night.
It’s a sell-out out there.’
‘My Bon Jovi band sells out
constantly. We still tour regularly. Only live albums these days –
nothing new to release. But we keep on touring and promoting the
albums. Hey, we have to make a living after all.’
‘You
actually worry about that?’
‘Nah. Not really in the end,’
responded Jon. ‘But Richie and Tico and Dave and Alec are happy
enough to tour for a while. Maybe as many as 5 or 6 million years, we
all agreed to once. Just to cement ourselves for eternal sales.
Eternity might cost that much effort,’
‘It doesn’t, you
know,’ responded Gabriel. ‘I am aware of artists with one album
who never had anything at all approaching sales success, but with a
webpage established and enough of a market sold over a few thousand
years, they get an audience who keep on buying the CD from time to
time and who spread the word about it to their kids and others by
simple word of mouth.’
Jon nodded. ‘But if you want to be
the biggest, you have to work at it. I know what you are saying,
Gabriel. One album really does set you up forever. There are only so
many songs to go around anyway, and there are buyers who want it all
and buy it all from time to time. We probably really just do it for
kicks for now. Something to do. We’ll retire one day. One day. But
our generation of rock and rollers saw the birth of so much of the
pop and rock music scene – so much of the legends came from our
time. We had to earn it, in the end. We had to show the kind of guts
our boasts were made of.’
‘Forever and a day?’ asked
Gabriel.
‘Always,’ responded Jon.
They went
on stage that night, and the fruit of their efforts saw a live CD and
DVD put together, which, for Gabriel’s efforts of having another
go, went straight to number one. Living in a rock and roll dream
indeed.
* * * * *
And time comes, and
time goes. And the Realm of Eternity saw lives of young children grow
up. And one particular child, Young Blaze, Gabriel’s latest
addition, took a large interest in his dad’s touring efforts and
took on the informal name ‘Blaze Bon Jovi’, just for the hell of
it.
Blaze was studying at university in Zaphona, the
capital city of Zaphora, not far from Zaphon Tower and one lunchtime,
in the cafeteria, he bumped into an attractive young angel, one he
had seen around the campus, but hadn’t been introduced. He put out
his hand and said ‘I’m Blaze.’
Danielle, Ambriel and
Meludiel’s daughter, smiled back, but didn’t take his hand.
‘Danielle. To Blaze, Danielle was a real spunk, and he was
instantly in love.
‘How old are you?’ asked Blaze.
’20.
And you?’
’19,’ responded Blaze. ‘Hey, do you like
guitar?’
Danielle looked at this young angel. He was trying
to impress her. Nice, but that is not what she was looking for in a
guy.
‘Sort of, Blaze. But not now, ok. I have to go.’ And,
waving at him, she took her lunch tray, walked to the back of the
cafeteria and sat down, not even looking at him.
But
Blaze was successful over the next few months getting to know her,
and tried very hard to impress her with his wicked guitar solos, yet
all she would say was ‘Wow. Amazing.’ Very sarcastically
.
*
* * * *
Talzudiel was the 43rd male Seraphim in birth
rank in the Realm of Eternity. Recently, relatively speaking, he had
finally wed his twin Winoniel, and they had had a son, name Jason.
Deciding that Zaphona University would be the ideal place to educate
him, as it was the premiere university in the Realm of Eternity, he
sent Jason to study at Zaphona University upon graduating from high
school. Wandering around the campus in the first few days of the new
year, Jason ran into Blaze and the two of them became best friends
very quickly. They shared similar tastes in music, both had premiere
Seraphim parentage, and both were studying Geography at the
University. And then Jason met Danielle, and instantly fell in love
with her. Blaze was furious. He wanted to say ‘Hands off my girl,
J,’ but Jason just smiled whenever Blaze dropped the hint that
Danielle was with him and said, ‘Sure thing, bro. Whatever.’
Yet,
out of the two of them, it was Jason who was the first to
successfully land a date with Danielle, and Blaze was nothing but
jealous.. Moaning to his father Gabriel about his heart being broken
in two, Gabriel suggested ‘Write a song about it. Impress her.
Blaze looked at his father, smiled to himself, and later on that
night, back on campus,, picked up a guitar, and started writing a new
song. 4 months later he released ‘Blaze Bon Jovi – Hearts on fire
for Love’ on his myspace page which, very quickly, was picked up by
a major label, and went to number one in the realm charts. Yet,
despite this monumental effort and his heart pleading in every verse
of the lyrics, Danielle ignored him. He had yet to really impress
her.
.
* * * * *
Jesus has his
headphones on, listening to his Sony Tape Walkman, listening to
‘Hearts on fire for Love’, on his lunch break at McDonalds. He
was thinking over King David and considering inviting him around for
another conversation. They hadn’t completely hit it off so well in
their last meeting, so perhaps another go at it, just to hopefully
gain himself a bit better of a personal reputation with the King.
Yes, that would be a good idea. He would arrange it soon, if David
was available and hopefully, second time around, get a firmer
representation of what he was really about across to David, and gain
a better understanding of David for himself.
* * * *
*
Talzudiel dropped in on Michael who was faithfully
at work in one of Talzudiel’s organisations to see how work was
going and if he was happy with his responsibilities. ‘You know,
Mikey. You have a solid reputation with management. You’re a
quality worker, and you have demonstrated that to management. Despite
your own reputation and fame, you have genuinely earned a promotion
if you are interested. There is a middle management position
available here at the moment. Are you interested?’
Michael
nodded. It was the promotion he was looking for. ‘Thanks Tal. Yes.
Yes I am.’
‘Good. Finish off what you are doing today, but
next week see your manager. He will have a package for you to look
at. And good luck and, again, thanks for the work you do for us. Your
invaluable.’
Michael smiled, happy at his continued good
reputation and, as Talzudiel left, he thought over the work he had
been doing for a while now. It was ok, but he was capable of more. He
had wanted to earn more, to really show to the world he would not
simply get by on past glories, and hopefully he had done just that.
Perhaps, in truth, that would be an eternal part of being the
Archangel Michael. Perhaps he really always would have to ‘Earn
it’. But if that was what destiny and life had in store for him,
then so be it. It rewarded him so richly in so many ways anyway that
he could not complain. You took the good with the bad, and whoever
you were, in the end, if you patiently and carefully earned your
glory, nobody could take it from you. Nobody.
* * * *
*
Jason and Talzudiel were at home, discussing life in
general, and Jason spoke of his new girlfriend Danielle. ‘Doesn’t
Blaze Bon Jovi’ love her,’ queried Talzudiel.
‘Yeh, he’s
crazy about her. But she went for me first of all, and I like her
dad. I think she is the one for me.’
Talzudiel nodded..
‘Watch that Blaze though, son. He could be no end of trouble in the
end.’
‘I will dad. I’ll be careful.’
*
* * * *
Winoniel was sitting on a rocking chair,
listening to ‘Over My Head’ by Kings X on her CD Walkman, looking
out from her verandah at the night. She was reflecting over finally
being with Talzudiel, her twin, after so long never even liking him
very much. He had found out she was currently single, had come around
to chat to her, and she had welcomed him warmly. That had been 22
years ago. And lo and behold, here they were, still together, now
with there very first child ‘Jason’, upon whom they both doted.
She thought back, all those years ago, to the words of Saruviel that
he had once spoken to her. ‘Talzudiel is not for you, Winny. Not
right away. He has a lot of issues – a lot of problems to work out.
Don’t trust him for a long time. Maybe even a million years,
sweetie. Maybe even a million years.’ She had not known why
Saruviel had shared these words with her straight away, but she had
been friendly to him after his return from his second exile for a
while, and he had formed something of a friendship with her. She had
felt him, at the time, perhaps jealous of Talzudiel, but promised to
keep his words in her heart anyway. And then she had carefully
watched Talzudiel for many years, and seen the wisdom of Saruviel for
herself. But now, after so long, and in point of very fact, the
passing of one million years, Talzudiel seemed to have left a shade
of darkness behind him, something she had known in him for a while,
and he seemed a better man. As if a fundamental act of repentance had
taken place. Of all the crazy things that Saruviel was known for, she
had not really suspected that he had seen what may have been called
by some a ‘Sin’ issue in Talzudiel. But he had. And she had been
careful because of it. But now, now she and her twin were together.
And though she had known many lovers and husbands, suddenly the very
fact it was her own twin, perhaps even in the Michael and Elenniel
tradition, seemed to mean so much to her. Something so incredibly
fundamental in fact. And they had a child, now. Young Jason. And she
loved him. So much did she love him. So much.
* * * *
*
Blaze had invited Danielle to Golden Lake for an
outing. Danielle, though insisted upon bringing Jason, despite Blazes
complaints, and the three of them had been given a special pass by
Gabriel to enjoy the private Seraphim section. Blaze was on a board
on the ‘Still and Calm Waters’ looking at Danielle. Jason was on
the shore, building a sand castle, paying them no heed. He looked at
her and suddenly wanted to touch her. He got off his board, swam over
to her, and paddling in front of her, quite close, smiled at her. She
smiled at him politely, but responded, ‘Uhh, Blaze. You’re a bit
close, aren’t you.’
‘I know,’ he responded.
He
continued staring at her, looking into her eyes.
‘Let me
guess,’ she said sarcastically. ‘You love me. Your hearts on fire
for me. Huh?’
‘You said it sweetheart.’
She
smiled to herself. She liked Blaze. She did. But he was not the one.
‘See him,’ she said, pointing to Jason.
Blaze looked at
him and said ‘What of it?’
‘’Well, I’ll marry that
boy one day. Kapiche?’
Blaze stared at her and, quietly, a
little root of bitterness rose within him. A bitter root of rejection
and humility. ‘Sure, he said.’ And under his breath there was the
faintest ‘Bitch’ before he got on his board and swam
off.
Later on he looked at the two of them together,
building a sandcastle, happy in each others company, smiling and
peaceful. He couldn’t let it go. It was deep in him. An attraction
to her, almost carnal. He would have her, one way or another. One way
or another.
* * * * *
The theophany was
lost in thought, sitting at home, thinking. A Bon Jovi song. Blaze of
Glory. He was Cain, looking for an Abel. Mmmm.
* * * *
*
The library was empty, well almost. Almost. Two kids
were studying, well in love with each other now, one of them
seriously thinking about proposing. And, then, a librarian who had
decided that the kids should be alright, left for home early, decided
she didn’t need to lock up, and headed off for her microwave
dinner. And then the Devil entered the building.
Blaze
had purchased the gun from an old military collectables store, and
purchased the bullets as well. Guns were rare in the Realm of
Eternity – extremely rare – as most residents were of extremely
high ethical standards and did not need to rely on such things. But
Blaze had found the gun, loaded it, and when the librarian left, he
decided he need not wait, but went on in.
He found
them, seated near the back of the study section, laughing, chatting,
delirious. He looked at Jason. His friend. His friend. He hated him,
now. Despised him. The girl was his. He knew that instinctively, the
girl was his. And he would have her, wether Jason liked it or not. He
put the gun in his pocket, and walked up to the chatting
couple.
Jason smiled. ‘Yo, Blaze. How you going.
What are you up to?’ Both of them looked at him innocently. ‘This,’
he responded, took out the gun, pointed it at Jason and, seeing the
horrified look on the couples face, didn’t care. It was his bitch.
One, two, three shots. One in the head, two in the chest, and Jason
reeled over. Danielle screamed, but Blaze grabbed her. ‘Don’t
worry, sweetie. You wouldn’t have liked him anyway.’ And then,
looking over her, the carnality from the murder rushing to his head,
he thought he may as well go through with it and, despite the
scratches to his face from the shrieking maiden, he pulled down her
jeans, ripped off her underwear and, his manhood feeling a force of
nature not that common amongst the children of the angels, he slowly,
with a demented heart, raped his lovechild.
When he
was finished she was not fighting him any more. He got up and she was
weeping. Weeping. He looked at her, and looked at Jason, whose blood
was over the floor. As he watched she crawled over and checked Jason.
She looked up at Blaze. ‘He’s Dead. He’s dead.’
Blaze
looked at them, the two of them, the love he had destroyed. He
dropped the gun, and, staring at his crime, backed away, backed away,
and then started running. He ran out the library, he ran out the
university grounds, and looked at the city of Zaphona. What would he
do now? Were would he run to? How could he hide from this? And then,
guilt him. A sudden rush to his mind, a feeling, never really felt
before, of just how evil he had become. And suddenly, knowing that he
was supposed to be an angel, an esteemed angel of glory, son of the
overseer of the Realm of Eternity, he felt a sense of loathing for
himself. Loathing at having killed one of his best friends. He looked
in his wallet, saw the credit card, and took it out. He walked –
for 20 minutes he walked, and then hailed a cab.
‘Were
to?’
‘The Airport.’
‘Right on, son.’
*
* * * *
Gabriel did not know what to say to Talzudiel.
He did not know how to find the words, or how to apologize enough. He
did not know what to think at all.
Talzudiel was cold
towards him, but said he understood. Said Gabriel wasn’t to blame.
Said these things happen.
‘And the kid?’ asked
Talzudiel.
‘We don’t know. He touched down at the portal,
paid for a ticket to Televon, and left. But we have no trace of him
after that. He is not using his credit card anymore, so could be
hiding anywhere on Televon, if he is even still there.’
Talzudiel
nodded. He though on justice – justice which was crying out for
vengeance. But he let it be. It was Gabriel’s kid. For Gabriel, for
the length of time he had served on holiness, he would give his kid a
break. This one time he would give his kid a break.
‘Then
don’t worry about it, Gab. Let the kid go. Let him go. I don’t
think he will ever return, so there is no point in hunting him down.
He will be a fugitive. He will be a Cain. So let him wander in Nod.
Let him wander.’
Gabriel put his head in his hands, and
nodded to himself. A wandering Cain forever.
Chapter
Five
Jesus was again chatting with David. ‘You are
very strong in your faith, David. Certain of yourself.’
David
looked at Jesus, not sure if this was another tactic, so responded
carefully. ‘Thanks, Yesh. I suppose you might be yourself. In your
faith, I guess.’
Jesus looked at him, instantly
understanding. ‘And you have a problem with that? Shouldn’t a man
live by his faith? By his word? I am sure you have a catalogue of
psalms you won’t consider betraying.’
‘No,’ I guess
not,’ responded David, sipping on his latte.
They
were at a Canbraphoran Café, enjoying themselves, out in the middle
of a lake were the café was situated, with a ramp going to the
shore. Swans and ducks were swimming all around and David, thinking
upon an idea he felt might be worth, right at that moment,
developing, started on an angle.
‘Nice. Swans. They are
nice, aren’t they?’
Jesus nodded. ‘Yes. I have always
liked swans. Serene. Full of grace.’ Suddenly a black swan jumped
up on the board to the side of them, squawked madly at the two of
them, seemingly looking for food, before David shooed it away. ‘Yes,
full of grace,’ said David, the faintest hint of a grin on his
face.
They sat there for a few moments before David
continued. ‘Duck’s, though. They are a smaller creature than
Swans. Aren’t they Jesus.’
‘Yes. Yes they are. I like
Donald. A good sense of humour. And that Daffy. Daniel’s favourite
duck, apparently.’
David smiled. ‘Mmm. Ducks. But between
ducks and swans, which creature, in your opinion, would be the more
glorious. The more graceful. The more divine.’
Jesus looked
at the ducks, swimming happily, going about their business. He turned
to David. ‘Well, each have their strengths. In the end, I don’t
think one could live without the other, but I would probably favour
the swan.’
‘The BIGGER swan,’ commented David.
‘You
could say that,’ responded Jesus.
‘Mmm. Nodded
David.’
They continued sitting and after a while an
attendant came forward, asked if they would like anything more, and
David ordered another latte and two donuts. Jesus didn’t ask for
anything.
David continued. ‘So the swan. The swan is
the creature of glory. The LARGER swan.’
Jesus nodded to
himself for a moment and said, ‘Yes. I guess so.’
‘You
know,’ started David, on a point. ‘The Old Testament is a LARGER
book than the New Testament. Isn’t it?’
Jesus nodded.
‘Why, Yes it is. Quite significantly.’
‘Quite a bit more
to study in there. Wouldn’t you say?’
‘Maybe. But
understanding the New Testament is, well, more of a life challenge
than the old. The old is quite simple.’
‘Perhaps,’
responded David.
He took another sip.
‘Well, this is
a good day. I am enjoying myself. Perhaps like that swan.’
Jesus
smiled ‘Yes David.’
‘Oh,’ said David, offhandedly.
‘How are your numbers? I mean, your Christian numbers. All up. The
whole universe.’
‘Uh, not completely sure. But well over
the quintillions. Probably not in the Septillions yet. Probably
not.’
‘Mmm. There are over a Decillion Jews in the
universe, Yesh. There are many of us, now. A huge amount. Perhaps
like the way the Swan is Larger than the duck.’
Jesus smiled
at that point. David did, indeed, have a fundamental point.
He
came out right out with it. ‘Se we are the duck, are we David? And
you are the glorious swan?’
‘Did I say that?’ queried
David, with perfect innocence.
‘No. No you didn’t,’
responded Jesus.
‘Mmm,’ smiled David.
They
sat there, drinking there lattes, and Jesus looked out at the lake.
Perhaps a response. A good one.
He came up with one, something
basic, but it would do.
‘Have you ever been to Australia,
David? Out on New Terra?’
David nodded. ‘A number of
times.’
‘Mmm,’ nodded Jesus. He waved to the waitress,
who came over. ‘Can I have one donut, please.’
‘Yes
sir,’ and she disappeared.
Jesus continued. ‘Oh, did you
happen to notice the currency they use there? The dollar
coins?’
David thought upon it, and then nodded. ‘Yeh. Yeh
a kangaroo on the dollar, but I forget what was on the 2
dollar.’
‘Mmmm,’ responded Jesus. ‘Did you notice
there size? I mean, the difference in size between the two
coins?’
David thought on that, and realized he in fact did
so. ‘Uh, yeh. The dollar is about 2 centimetres in diameter, while
the two dollar is about 1 and a bit.’
The donut arrived, and
Jesus thanked the waitress. He took a bite and stared at David.
‘So
the smaller coin is the 2 dollar, then.’
David nodded. ‘Yes.
Yes it is.’
‘The SMALLER coin.’
David grinned,
suddenly catching on. ‘Uh, yeh it is.’
‘Of course, two
dollars is worth twice as much as a dollar, isn’t it David? ISN’T
it?’
David tossed his head from side to side, thinking it
over, but had to smile and say, ‘Why yes, Jesus of Nazareth. Two
dollars is worth TWICE as much.’
‘Good to hear,’
responded the man from Nazareth.
David looked at
Jesus. He looked at him and made a mental note. ‘A clever boy. A
clever boy.’
And the day passed, and glory had been
attained by certain individuals, and on went life.
* *
* * *
Ariel was staying with Bathsheba in Canbraphora,
and King David had returned home, sharing an anecdote. He had gone to
his personal collection in the basement of his Canbraphoran abode,
were he stayed often, and retrieved an Aussie coin collection. He
looked at them and nodded to himself, and Bathsheeba tried to console
him. ‘Don’t worry, Davy. You’ll get him back.’
‘Oh
well,’ said the King of Israel. ‘The kid is still a schmuck, but
does have a brain.’
Ariel looked at David’s coins. ‘Oh,
you collect Australian coins.’
David looked at her, and
nodded. ‘Yes. I have a huge collection on Televon, but also keep a
lot of them here in my Canbraphoran home as well. They are down in
the basement. David, I mean Ambriel, was born in Australia, and has a
vast collection of them. I got the hobby from him.’
‘Mmm.’
Nodded Ariel. ‘Do you have a favourite coin?’
‘Mainly
the two dollar coins. Old ones. Early dates. They are worth a fortune
now.’
Ariel nodded, and decided to comment, having heard the
anecdote. She decided to comment, and place some potential faith in
her twin. ‘Daniel collects Australian coins as well. He also has a
vast collection.’
‘Does he,’ said David. ‘Interesting.
I will have to have a chat with him. Does he have a favourite coin,
then?’
‘Uh, yes. Well, he has absolutely trillions of 5
cent pieces. Too many to count. But they are not his favourite,
though. There not his favourite.’
‘Which one is?’
‘The
$200 coins. The rare ones. The collectors ones. He has chased down
early models for many years, buying them from eBay and going to swap
shops and coin stores all over the place. He doesn’t have as many
as the 5 cent pieces, but he has over a billion of them now, so he
tells me. Apparently, so he claims, the largest known collection of
them. The biggest in the universe.’
David looked at her, but
said nothing. Nothing at all. Bathsheba finally spoke up. ‘The
biggest in the universe?’
‘As far as he is aware of. Of
all the known of collections, including the Rothchild’s, his
collection of 5 cent pieces and $200 coins are officially the largest
known collections. He is quite famous in numismatist circles for
having them.’
‘Right,’ said Bathsheba.
Ariel
nodded, very very softly. She had said her piece. She had defended
her man.
David looked at her, almost sharply, but then turned
back to his coins. And then, putting his head in his hands, slowly,
very slowly, he sobbed. Bathsheba tried to console him, Ariel felt
somewhat guilty, and in the throneroom of Zaphon a burst of purple
and scarlet flames danced around the room, almost in a shout of joy,
before a steady blue resumed.
* * * * *
Andrew
looked at the newspaper. ‘The Bongiovi All Stars – One night only
in Canberra 37 – Book Now’. ‘Hey, Bianca. Do you want to go and
see the Bongiovi All Stars?’
Bianca came into the room from
the adjoining bedroom and nodded. ‘Sure. That sounds awesome. But
will you be able to get tickets?’
‘I hope so. I’ll ring
now.’ He picked up his mobile, was about to make a phone call, when
a knock came to his unit. ‘I’ll just get that,’ he yelled out
to Bianca, who had gone back into her room.’ He made his way to the
door, opened it and, standing there, a face he had not seen in nearly
20 years – Jessica.
‘Shit!’ he said. ‘Fuck! What are
you doing here?’
Jessica looked at him. ‘Well, I live
here, don’t I?’
‘Uh.’
‘You going to invite me
in?’
‘Uh.’
‘Well?’
‘Uh, yeh.
Sure.’
He motioned to her and she came in, looked around at
their flat which had not really changed in nearly two decades, and
sat down on the couch. Andrew just stared at her. After a while his
mind was yelling to him, come on. Deal with it. It’ll be ok. So,
instinct taking over, he came in, sat down on the other couch and
looked at her. She said nothing.
‘Who was that honey?’
said Bianca, walking into the room. She noticed Jessica practically
immediately and said ‘Fuck. Jess.’
‘Hello Bianca,’
responded Jessica. ‘I guess I really shouldn’t be surprised
finding you here, SHOULD I.’ The question was completely
rhetorical.
Andrew spoke. ‘You. You left Jess. You never
called. I didn’t know were you went. I was worried shitless. I
mean, we were together. What was I supposed to think?’
Jessica
looked at Bianca, standing in her place. ‘I don’t know, Andrew. I
wonder what I was supposed to think. You DID go and see her that
night, didn’t you? Didn’t you?’
‘That was a long time
ago Jessica. And, yes. But fuck you, cause nothing happened. Nothing
at all. We met up, danced, and that was all. And I came
home.’
Jessica nodded coldly. ‘But she is here now, isn’t
she.’
Bianca defended her man. ‘You left, Jess. I mean,
Andrew did nothing with me for about 6 months after you had gone. He
was waiting for you to return. I came around about twice in that
time, and nothing ever happened. He was perfectly faithful. But,
well, you know. He’s a guy. He has urges. And, well. Well I love
him. And with you gone, and not saying anything, not even knowing if
you were alive or dead, well…’ she trailed off. ‘Well you can
hardly blame the guy.’
Jessica stared at Bianca. ‘Can’t
I?’
‘You overreacted,’ said Bianca. ‘As simple as
that. I came to catch up with Andrew. And, yes, it is true I still
wanted him again. I wanted to see how loyal he was to you and if
there was a chance between us. But I am an honourable woman, Jess. I
would have taken the hint.’
‘Would you?’ said Jess, with
unveiled hostility in her voice.
Bianca didn’t
respond.
For a few moments the tension in the room was
palpable, but nobody said anything. Eventually Andrew spoke. ‘Uh,
we have all your stuff, Jess. It is locked up in the cupboard. We
haven’t touched anything. I think Bianca wore one of your little
black dresses once, but got really convicted and swore she wouldn’t
do it again. So we put all your stuff in the cupboard and locked
it.’
‘We washed all your clothes,’ said Bianca, now
showing some concern.
‘Uh, thanks,’ responded Jessica. She
looked at Andrew. She looked at him and realized something. He had
moved on. Whatever thoughts she had about returning now, after all
this time. Whatever possible thoughts she may have been considering,
well. Was there any point now. She stood to her feet, looked at both
of them, and said ‘You can keep all my stuff. There was nothing to
personal. I don’t want to go to the bother of going through it all.
Throw it out if you don’t want it.’
‘Uh, sure,’
responded Bianca.
Andrew looked at her, sensing Jessica’s
frustrations, but it was clear he wasn’t going to say anything
more. It was clear he wasn’t going to say anything about love,
about anything like ‘Stay for a while’. About anything like that.
It was clear as day.
Jessica looked at Andrew’s hand. There
was no ring. She dared it. ‘Well, are you. Well. Well, are you
married yet?’
Bianca smiled. ‘Not yet. But we have talked
about it for a while. It seems like a good idea to both of us, but we
have decided to go slow for a while. No need to rush. Maybe in a few
more years, perhaps. If everything goes well.’
Jess nodded.
‘Mmm.’ She looked at Andrew, he looked back at her, almost
helplessly. What could he really say.
‘Well. Ok. It was good
to meet you again, Andrew. But I will go now.’
Andrew got up
and showed her to the door and Bianca, deciding they might want some
privacy, went back to the bedroom.
Jess stared at him. ‘I
have one thing to ask, Andrew. One question. And then I will leave
you in peace. Did you ever really love me? Did you?’
Andrew
looked at her, and sighed. ‘Oh, Jess. Oh, Jess.’
She
looked at him, knew enough from that response, and smiled at him. She
may as well, then. She may as well. ‘Well, here is my card. Ok. I
left the city for a number of years, but moved back 6 months ago and
have been working as a secretary for a modelling agency
northside.’
‘So you have been avoiding us?’
‘Only
to start with. Look, you can call me if you like. If you like. I know
you and Bianca are together, and I wouldn’t want to interfere with
that. But if you still want to be friends, well there is my number.’
Andrew looked down at the card and nodded. ‘Thanks Jess. Thanks.
And it was great to see you. Great, ok.’
She nodded. ‘Well,
ok. I gotta go.’
She was about to turn when, suddenly, he
took hold of her, looked right into her eyes, and moved forward,
kissing her on the lips. She didn’t resist. ‘Jess, I do love you,
ok. I never stopped, ok. I never stopped.’ She stared at him, and a
faint smile crossed her lips.
‘Ok. Well, bye.’ She turned,
walked off, and did not look back. Out in the car, sitting there, she
was thinking. Thinking on his kiss, on his words, on what he said. He
never stopped loving her. He never stopped. She turned the key,
started the car and drove off. Whatever else, it was doubtful she
would not see him again. She doubted that very much indeed.
*
* * * *
Ariel had returned to Danielphon, was sitting
at her couch, looking at the calendar. He was still gone. Still gone.
He had emailed her upon arriving, and then about 2 years later saying
he would still be a while. The last email was 5 years ago, and she
had heard nothing. She had thought about going to visit him, but
decided against it in the end. As far as she knew it they were still
married, and she assumed he would be faithful. But men could marry
more than one woman if they wanted. The law allowed that. Maybe he
had married her. Maybe.
She didn’t have very much to
do these days. Ambriel had kept her company from time to time, and he
was in the habit of seeing his mentor, King David, quite a lot. She
had thus gotten used to Bathsheba’s company, and visited them in
there Canbraphoran abode quite regularly. They had become close
friends, her and Bathsheeba, and with Daniel gone she needed the
solace and the company.
She worked, casual, but she
got about one day a fortnight and that was about it. But, really, she
didn’t need the money at all and mainly did the work to occupy
herself. It was simple relief work for substitute teachers, and she
had a contract stipulating one day a fortnight at most, which the
company honoured. In the last few months she had seriously considered
taking up a full time teaching position at some Zaphoran school or
another, so long had Daniel’s absence become. But, not yet.
Something inside her said he could return at any moment, and she
didn’t want to have commitments she might suddenly want to get rid
of. So she waited. She waited for her man, and lived a simple, basic
life, knitting a lot, watching tv, playing the guitar to herself, and
visiting David and Bathsheeba. Oh, there were a million things she
could potentially do to occupy herself, but she had no real desire
to. Instead she waited. Waited the return of her twin.
A
knock came to the door. She put down her magazine, went to the side
mirror and looked at herself. She was immaculate, as usual. She
opened the door, ready to smile, and was pleasantly and happily
surprised. There he was. Finally. Back. Her beloved.
‘Hi
sweetie,’ he said, and gave her a peck on the cheek. He turned away
and waved to some people on the sidewalk. ‘Uh, we have guests for a
while. Possibly quite a while.’
Ariel nodded softly. ‘Sure,
she said.’ The guests came forward, one young man about 15 and a
girl about 13 and then, suddenly recognizing her, Sharlamane. Daniel
looked at her. ‘This is Daniel, my boy, and Danielle, my girl. And
you know Sharlamane.’
The kids smiled at Ariel and she
smiled back. Sharlamane spoke. ‘I am sure you will like my
children. They are just like there father.’
‘Really?’
said Ariel. She looked at Daniel, and smiled inwardly. ‘Just like
there father, are they?’
Daniel looked a bit guilty, but
said nothing. ‘Oh, yeh. I probably should have let you know. We are
hitched. Me and Sharlie. I mean, you knew that though, didn’t you?
I must have said something.’
‘No. NO word,’ responded
Ariel.
‘Oh,’ said Daniel, again looking guilty. ‘Well,
now you know. She will be staying in one of the guest’s room and,
well. Well. You know.’
‘Know what?’ queried
Ariel.
‘Well, some nights I will be staying in the same
room. If you know what I mean.’
‘I think I do,’
responded Ariel, looking at the children. ‘I think I do.’
Later
that evening, after they had retired for the evening, the kids
sleeping, and Daniel in with Sharlamane, Ariel sat in front of the
fire they had started, staring into the embers. Daniel. Daniel.
Daniel. Did he ever really change? Just then a door opened and
closed, and Daniel came into his twin, sitting next to her, putting
his arm around her. He kissed her on the cheek and said. ‘It is
good to be home, Ariel. Great to be back. I have had the time of my
life with Sharlie and the Kids, but it is great to see you
again.’
Ariel nodded. Somewhat reluctantly, but she
nodded.
‘And how long will they be with us? How
long?’
Daniel looked at her, but understood. ‘Ok, for a
while. Possibly for quite a while. But Sharlamane has already made it
known she will want to get back home eventually, and she doesn’t
expect me to follow her. She knows, ok, that you are my twin. I don’t
think she is trying to change that, as if she really could. All I
really need to know, sis, is that you are ok with this. I know I
haven’t put this on you very much previously – hardly ever in
fact. But sometimes stuff like this happens in life. But I won’t
abuse the situation, ok. I will have plenty of time for you. And when
she finally leaves, it will just be me and you again. The kids will
return with her.’
Ariel thought that over. She thought on
that being the reality. She wasn’t really, in truth, jealous of
Daniel’s relationship with Sharlamane. It was as old as the hills,
that romance. It would just be frustrating for a while. But she was
firm in her love for him, now. Very firm. And it wouldn’t last
forever, so, the tiny bit of resentment that had been building up,
she put aside, with the grace of a Seraphim angel, and smiled at him.
And nestling up against him, she was just pleased to have him back.
Just pleased to have him back home again.
* * * *
*
Jesus sat with his twin, Jenna, watching a show on
Orthodox Judaism. Principles of Kosher food preparation. Jenna, now,
occasionally cooked for her husband, but was reasonably devoted in
her Orthodox Jewish faith, and was learning to cook in the Kosher
style, something that had usually been done for her previously. She
had for a long time been something of a hard-nosed, almost feminist,
Jewish business woman, dedicated to financial success and living a
quality life. She hadn’t married that many times, had absolutely no
concern whatsoever for ‘Jesus Christ and his Christian Church’,
which she still called a cult to him occasionally, but when he
finally had gotten over his vow of poverty fixation, she had agreed
to hang with him and when he had proposed, with a decent pay-packet
now able to support her, which she knew she might need long term,
because she would NOT take any of his church money, she had accepted
and they were now happily wed. He was, in truth, a fairly spiritual
guy, which had led him to go off on his Christ agenda. The church
went way overboard in the things they assumed of Jesus of Nazareth,
qualities they assumed he possessed which she knew were in fact only
shallow or lacking. But, yes, in truth, he had been one of the more
spiritual soldiers of God of his generation, and did have a firm
handle on those sorts of aspects of the Jewish faith. He was
pleasant, careful, treated her appropriately like a good Jewish man
should treat his wife, and was duly respectful. All things
considered, despite his sometimes erratic viewpoints, he was a
reasonably good catch.
She didn’t really care about
his fame. Long ago she had surmised, if she herself needed such fame
to compete with him, she could achieve it in the goodness of time. So
what that people called him God – so what. A lot of that was only
illusory devotion anyway as far as she was concerned, and SHE was
faithful to God and his religion – Jesus wasn’t as far as she was
truly concerned. He was somewhat handsome. By no means ugly, but
neither a playboy. But he did have reasonably good looks, and somehow
the beard he wore seemed appropriate – traditional.
‘I
don’t know why you bother with shows like this,’ said Jesus.
‘Really. You aren’t serious, are you? Kosher? Kosher? You think
God gives the slightest damn about Kosher.’
‘Shut up,’
she said, watching the television. ‘And don’t even start on your
theological conceptions on this issue. Don’t want to hear them.
Jews are Kosher.’
He shook his head, and stared at the
box.
God couldn’t help himself. The spirit settled
in the corner of the room, and listened attentively.
‘You
know,’ started the defiant Jesus anyway. ‘It’s just bloody
food. We all know what it is made of – dirt. Molecules, Atoms, etc.
Unclean? That’s a joke.’
Jenna said again, ‘Don’t want
to hear your excuses, Jesus. Talk with a Rabbi if you are confused on
that issue.’
‘A Rabbi. Ha. That’s a good one. Pharisees
are a joke.’
God smiled to himself.
‘A
Pharisee is a well educated Jew actually interested in obeying, God,’
responded Jenna. ‘Not going off on vain pursuits of self-glory with
an accumulation of so called divine wisdom, all of which is actually
an excuse not to learn your place and keep the commands of
God.’
‘Yeh right,’ said Jesus staring at the tv.
God
continued listening.
‘And, come to think of it, who
exactly gave you this commission? To go off on your own agenda. I
think, really, it went to your head. You were probably bipolar or
something like that. Heard voices. That is what I think.’
Jesus
just shook his head, staring at the box.
‘You
probably are still a schizo. Like that Daniel fellow. Two peas in a
pod.’
‘Don’t mention Daniel. He is pure ego.’
‘He’s
not the only one,’ she said under her breath.
God
smiled.
They continued watching the show and Jesus
dared ask the question. ‘So what is for dinner? Pork Chops. You
know, my church loves Pork chops. They taste yummy,
sweetheart.’
Jenna nodded. Typical Jesus comment. ‘No. We
are NOT having Pork Chops. Nor are we having Bacon, or Calamari which
you like, or Dog or Cat or Horse or Camel. None of those things.’
He
smiled at the Dog or Cat comment.
‘We are having roast lamb,
which will be properly prepared.’
‘Fine,’ he
responded.
She thought about for a few moments, and put in
‘And I am sure you like LAMB don’t you. Jesus of Nazareth.’
He
almost smiled. He almost smiled, but kept his nerve.
God,
having enjoyed himself, disappeared, but had taken notes and would
chat with a few angels one day on the marvellous theological beliefs
of Jesus of Nazareth.
Chapter
Six
‘Biology, Daniel? Biology? You want to study
biology?’
‘Yep. Human and Angel biology. I have found my
calling in life. A Doctor. Rob suggested it.’
‘Robert
Preston.’
‘Yeh, Bobby.’
‘The Lawyer. The
controversial one. Goes on about rights and so on.’
‘That’s
him.’
‘How do you know him, then?’
‘Oh. I guess
I never mentioned it. We were best friends in our human sojourn. Very
good friends – he was loyal to me, all the way through life.
Completely loyal. A lot came and went, but Bobby kept the
faith.’
‘Oh,’ responded Ariel. ‘You should introduce
me some day.’
‘Yeh, sure.’
‘But you are quite
familiar with biology now, aren’t you anyway?’
‘Not the
finer details. There is quite a lot to study, especially the human
brain. It is a complex machine, really – a testimony to God’s
grand design.’
She nodded. That much sounded
true.
‘Anyway,’ he continued. ‘I have studied before.
Biology, I mean. But I have never gone all the way to becoming a
Doctor. But, well. You know.’
‘What?’
‘I have
never felt a calling in life. A Specific calling. I mean, sure, I
have my own goals. My own desires. But this, well…’ he left off.
‘Well this feels like it might be something I am supposed to do.
Sort of like an eternal responsibility – taking care of people.
Looking to their wellbeing. There bodily health.’
‘Has
Maimonides inspired you?’
‘Him? Uh, no. We are poles apart
in theology. But, yes, he was a doctor also. Still is one – very
professional.’
‘So biology it is then?’ finished
Ariel.’
‘Yes. Yes, I guess so.’
‘Good to hear,’
said Sharlamane, coming into the room. ‘I think that is a very good
idea for you Daniel Daly. A very good idea.’
‘Thanks
Sharlamane.’
* * * * *
Callodyn was
on earth. And, funnily enough, the first thing he had been requested
to do by the Messianic family was ‘Write more Chronicles, dude.
People love that shit.’
And so, ensconced in Haven
Noahide Fellowship in Canberra, the world generally accepting that he
was probably the returned Callodyn from heaven, Callodyn sat in his
office at 29 Merriman Crescent in Macarthur, typing up new
adventures. His mind was focusing on a subject – one which Daniel
had brought up with him. ‘In the end, Cally, there are only so many
words, so many original sentences, so many stories to tell. But I
think the secret is this – dig your own universe to tell tales in,
and just keep on writing. Population never ends and there are always
new fans to the work. It is just soap opera in the end. Go over it,
and over it, and over it again, but always offer them up a new and
fresh variation in your current writings. And, really, take the time
and effort to write it afresh each time. It creates a spirit upon the
work and, if you bring something of the culture of the day into the
writing, it feels culture current and serves a useful purpose that
way. Now, never plagiarise your own work or somebody elses – at
least not deliberately. Stay away from the universes of classic
novels which you should know about by now. Leave famous characters
alone, unless you are doing a not-for-profit fanfic. Be careful on
that though – check to see if the author approves of fanfics of
their work. A lot don’t mind, but some do. And make sure you stick
with your established characters – in that way it is your own
original work and writing which you contribute to the universe on a
regular basis. It is your own share of the pie. Inevitably you will
end up writing exactly the same sort of novel you have written
countless times before anyway. That really doesn’t matter. Just
make it a new project, give it an original numbering and date
sequence, and release it. One thing, make sure you promote your early
foundational original works. When it was all new, fresh and original.
They are a key part of the market and selling point for you. Pray
about them, promote them constantly, and never stop signing
autographed copies of the same old text. Never stop promoting your
first works. This is especially true for angels like you and me
because we were born so bloody early in civilization. We are lucky,
really. Now, on fanfics of your work, don’t allow them to sell them
for profit. You don’t want the competition. Do, though, allow
donations to their websites for their fanfics, and make sure they
keep their published book format fanfics not for sale, but only for
giveaway for free and only to their local regions – you know, the
planet they are from or the particular disc they live on. You really
don’t need to worry that much about fanfic competitors in the end.
As the original creator you get plenty of glory for your work, and
really it needs to be shared to those who have a love for what you
write so they can write the stuff in their own words and share in the
love for what you are writing about. You own it – you created the
universe – but other people who have read it and delighted in it
have a moral right also to sort of take part in the glory you
created. But only to a certain degree. You retain moral rights to all
your universes. Yeh, in the end, when you have filled a cover of your
novel with a page full of the current volume number of the saga, and
the date as well, then it is about time to get over an official
volume number and just release your new writing to the market without
any specific volume number or date of publication. Just release it
under New Releases in book stores and from your websites. It is meant
just to be a current book for the public to read, probably like many
of them that they have read countless times before. Just keeping it
in print. But, again, make sure you write it afresh. Put in the
effort to write it again, because the story will feel fresh to the
era that way. That is an important point. I mean, sure, you could
study out that idea and release a suitable work from your back
catalogue, but the best idea is to simply write it afresh because it
will be perfect that way. Of course, retirement is always an option
if you must, and just go on promoting the old originals and not
bother working. But continuing to work, well. Well this might sound
stupid, bro. It might sound stupid, but it just gives you something
useful to do with your time, and is a good source for a current
income. May as well work, God said to me once. May as well work. And,
well, that is mostly about it, bro. That is mostly about
it.’
Callodyn had agreed pretty strongly with Daniel all
those years ago and, sitting at his desk, realizing that the work of
actual work – of writing – would give him a pastime and
occupation anyway. May as well do what he liked doing on a permanent
basis. May as well.
* * * * *
Ariel was
curious on an issue. The theophany was visiting her, catching up with
his Seraphim daughter, sitting, eating some stew she had made,
seemingly as happy as he always was. Daniel was out at the moment,
Sharlamane was in the other room with her kids, and Ariel was left
alone with God.
‘God. Does everyone have a soulmate? Even
our offspring?’
‘No. You don’t know the
statistics?’
‘What statistics?’
‘Male to Female
ratio in birth rates?’
‘Uh. Mm. Oh yes, slightly more
women are born.’
God nodded. ‘Yes. That is the
plan.’
‘Why?’ asked Ariel, wanting to know.
‘The
firstborn Seraphim and Cherubim all have a twin. That was all
arranged. Human’s don’t. Ketravim don’t. And why? Usually, so
men can have more than one wife if they can afford to keep her. Men
are prone to stray, women to be faithful.’
‘Don’t I know
it,’ said Ariel to herself.
God took another mouthful of
stew and continued. ‘Well, realm law forbids a woman from having
more than one husband at any particular time, while men can have more
than one wife at a time if they so wish.’
‘And that is how
you want it?’
God looked at her, but continued eating his
stew. He continued looking at her, finally speaking. ‘I don’t
really reveal my own viewpoints terribly much, you know Ariel. Only
certain things. Only certain things which are required to be known. I
am usually happy thereafter for each to find their way.’
‘But
you are going to tell me?’
‘Will you keep it to
yourself?’
She nodded.
‘Well, yes. That is
generally how I want it. Some men are quite randy, for want of a
better word. They seek to mate as many times as they can. It is in
fact how they were made.’
‘Why?’
‘Just because.
Call it the wisdom of God, but that is just how it is.’
She
nodded and took a sip on her diet coke.
‘I suppose if that
is how you want it.’
God smiled at her, and continued eating
his stew.
* * * * *
Callodyn looked at
the world. 7 Billion souls. They had finally settled, after settling
the galaxy and much of the universe, back on earth. There were now
few out there – in the distant stars. Few humans. The alien races
were gone, now. Dead. Galactic warfare had destroyed world after
world, and the peoples of this universe had never found true peace.
But mankind had survived – mankind had gone on. They had found out
they were the first of God’s creatures, and were the last as well.
That, seemingly, was the way of things. That was the way of the
divine.
Today on earth mankind was approaching the
millionth year since creation, as the creationists reckoned it.
Israel ruled the hearts of men, so it was claimed by many. Israel,
the everlasting Kingdom on earth, still going strong since defeating
the final horn of the fourth beast in the legendary World War II. The
fourth beast’s final expression, the Nazi nightmare, had lost that
war, and then Israel as a kingdom had been reborn, and had never been
defeated since. But they were not alone. Callodyn, who had been
studying the last million years of earth history, had an atlas in
front of him, looking at the nations of today. Australia, still the
same nation, unchanged. Tasmania had thought once of independence,
but stayed firm as Aussies in the end. The United Kingdom, still
unchanged, as well as Ireland. New Zealand, Canada and the United
States of America were still the same, and in fact the very same 50
states of the USA had prevailed. They had not gone anywhere. But
nowhere else was the same. No other nation he recognized. He thought
on his prayer, all those years ago. When he had gotten down on the
ground in Macarthur were he had lived, his face in the dirt, humbled
before God. And he had said ‘Infinite Lord of Glory. Majestic
Yahweh. Preserve my people. Preserve my nations. May they endure
eternally before you. May they prevail. Lord of glory, I know full
well the promises you have given your son Israel. I know this of
eternal truth. Yet, I know also the promise to Edom that, in time, he
would break his brother’s yoke. And I know you honour your word and
the faithful. Lord, while Edom has strayed, let that never happen to
us. Let your true grace be upon my peoples, and let our nations
survive. Let our sovereignty endure. For the nations beyond us, I can
not object if the Kingdom of Israel rules them, for this is your
promise to them. But grant us exemption – grant us grace – and
let our dominions endure, for we love you truly Almighty God, and
call upon your name with humble hearts.’
Callodyn
had written down that prayer once, and found it on a website he had
started. Still online. Still the same content, the same prayer.
Amazing.
It was funny. The prophet had said, in the
Neviim, those nations which failed to serve Israel, which failed to
serve the Everlasting Kingdom, would end. And they all had. All other
nations were now gone, and mankind had seen empire after endless
empire form and fall away, simply by utter refusal to serve the
chosen anointed of God. His people had been given grace, but he knew
in his heart it was more than that. They had committed to God
personally – from the uttermost parts of their heart – and they
had endured. In the words of President Obama which he had recalled,
the United States will prevail, it will endure.
He
found a strong Jewish population in Canberra, now, were he lived,
with 4 synagogues. He had spoken with Rabbis at the synagogues who
had claimed they were careful with there numbers. ‘The English are
proud of their dominion, Callodyn. They are proud. We live here in
harmony, though, and have very good relations with the English
Commonwealth.’ But the rest of the nations. Well, they come and go.
They never choose to serve God. They never choose to humble
themselves and seek out his ways. In fact, lawlessness is not that
uncommon beyond Israel or English borders. They have chosen sin, we
feel.’
‘And destiny?’ queried Callodyn. ‘Will Israel
one day claim more territory?’
‘We do in fact plan on
doing so. But we are cautious with the British monarchy. Very
cautious. They speak of equality with Israel, in the ultimate sharing
of spoils, and we can not say we rightly object to very much. They
have only endured by God’s grace, but have served the Covenant of
Noah in true faith for very long now. The other nations spat out that
belief after a while. They rejected God and chose sinful
ways.’
‘Yes. Haven is doing very well, now. As are the
other 6 assemblies I began.’
‘They prosper, child of Noah.
Yet, we always acknowledged the truthfulness of the claim of children
of Noah. They are partakers of the Everlasting Kingdom also. That
much they have earned.’
Callodyn had nodded. That much, in
the opinion also of Daniel, seemed to have now been proved the
case.
‘But what the future holds? Well who knows,’ said
the Rabbi. ‘Who knows.’
* * * * *
Bantriel
smiled at the question. ‘The Eternal Kingdom of France? Well I
should hope so. We are well aware of our shortcomings on earthly
soil, but there we were never really given a chance by the prophets
of Israel anyway. Serve or perish as a nation. So we let it go and
chose a heavenly reward instead. And, lo and behold, the bible is an
interesting and accepted spiritual book in the heavenlies, but not
binding in the same sense. We find here strong Jewish popularity, and
the enduring popularity of Prince Michael, a proud and true son of
Israel. But we do know our English brothers are equally as proud of
Metatron, a son of the British Empire, first in rank in the Realm of
Eternity. Yet they all had to choose somewhere in the end, and such
were there choices. I am French. Of France, and we have many promises
from the Theophany God, for our long ancient service, for the
enduring eternality of the Kingdom of France in the heavenlies. He
has promised me in no uncertain words that France will endure in the
Realm of Eternity forever, that the French language will never cease
to be spoken, and that upon our own soil our sovereignty is ensured.
We know this true also of the Kingdoms of Israel, as well as the
British, our Russian compatriots, and so on. Callodyn, upon his
recent return to the Realm of Eternity, has spoken much of the
welfare of Earth, but what can we really say. We made our mundane
choices in the end. But no bother. No bother. France endures
eternally in the heavenlies, so such is life. Such is life.’
The
reporter asked another question. ‘The glory of France? Do you seek
more of the future discs of eternity? Those promised to the
Ketravim?’
‘We know so well that the Cherubim discs, 99%
or thereof, have been claimed by Sariel and Callodyn’s great
earlier machinations in the Realm of Eternity for the glories of the
British dominion, but again, such is life. And while they have had
the remarkable good fortune to claim the last 73,118 Cherubim
officially on the register, ensuring the greatest Cherubim dominion
without challenge, especially as they simply have the last disc sown
up, why should we really complain too much when latter glory is
promised and, ultimately, time marches on. The Cherubim have
1,400,000 promised discs of eternity. We all know this. Semyazaphon
is the popular name for the first, and so on until the 1,400,000th
disc. We have a tiny smattering of these discs, but no matter. They
shall suffice in the end. But, it is in the glory of the Ketravim
that France is competing. As we all know God has stated Ketravim
numbers shall never cease, and all well and good. But there are
available but 1,400,000,000 Ketravim choices for disc-ship and
overseersmanship, and half and half to both male and female. These
choices, so God has made quite clear, are based on merit – are
based on the task to glory God has set the children of men. It is
those children of men who have become blessed Ketravim angels who
strive to the uttermost in the planetary bodies were the high
majority of Ketravim are chosen from, were the future glory of France
will be won. We know well truly that Rachel of the Cherubim will be
Rachael of the Ketravim, and oversee the so-called unified discs to
bridge between Cherubim and Ketravim world. But beyond that, the
choices of glory will only be made known as time progresses, and God
has yet to declare any such choices beyond Rachael. The theophany has
stressed merit as the means whereby the Ketravim choices will be
realized, and it is on such truths that we serve. Such truths that
the Kingdom of France righteously serves.’
The
reported nodded, and Sariel spoke up. ‘We of the British have
decided, also, to meet such a challenge. But we have also declared we
seek little more than a fair ratio of the division amongst Ketravim
choices. Of course, the real thing we look forward to is the Saruvim
discs, were the discs simply remain the same length outwards, as it
has been declared. Naturally, each time the area of each disc gets
bigger, but nowhere near the size of the earlier doublings. This is
were England has proposed to all nations a fair and equitable
division. By the grace of God, he has already chosen the Kingdom of
Andorra to be the last of the Saruvim discs of Eternity, for we all
know too well what small and humble size they were given on earth.
But we have much agreement with most nations, France here included,
that we share the glory of the Saruvim as equitably as possible, and
it indeed seems that we can come to about an equal size in land for
the nations of the traditional Terraphoran and Zaphoran
community.’
Radrukiel, Prince of Russia, spoke up.
‘Sariel has spoken truly. And he has spoken well. I will point this
out to everyone. Russia has claimed 20% of the Abraphim discs from
long memory in the community, which are to be exactly 20% of the
overall area of the Abraphim disc-ship as well. God has consented
that, after the British Empire claimed the most land and built the
largest Empire on Earth, that Russia’s dominion at the height of
its glory was second. And thus we follow on after the British glory
in claiming Cherubim to claim the lion’s share of Abraphim glory.
God has consented to this fact, so we state this once more for the
record.’
‘Of course, Noah himself,’ continued
Sariel, ‘has claimed the entire 1,400,000,000,000,000,000 discs for
himself, for all the Noaphim Angel’s overseersmanship, which are
yet to be created, alike with the forthcoming Saruvim and
Abraphim.’
Cimbrel spoke up. ‘The Cimbrphim are to
be all Japanese angels. God has assented to this, and we have claimed
77% of the 1,400,000,000,000,000,000 discs assigned for Cimbrphim
rulership. Of course, as God has ruled previously, there shall no
longer be any increase in total disc numbers for each new grouping of
angels than the 1,400,000,000,000,000,000 discs promised for both the
Noaphim and the Cimbrphim. From then on, all new series of discs
shall carry such a number, and they shall all be of the same width,
naturally increasing somewhat each time with the circumventing of the
entire realm.’
Another reporter queried Michael, who
had remained silent. ‘And this is to go on perpetually?
Forever?’
Michael nodded. ‘Well, there is no intention of
God to ever refrain from allowing us to reproduce. Sexual relations
is a normal and healthy part of being alive, and so is progeny. Thus,
as it is truly called, the Realm of Eternity is planned on being just
that – eternal. Now, to clear up a point, later on history, when we
are well beyond the segments of discs assigned to the glories from
The Seraphim through to the Cherubim, the micro-nations become a
reality with the Ketravim titled discs. New Kingdoms can at that
point start making there claims for dominions, but for the earlier
discs all the Kingdom choices are well and truly
established.’
‘Good to hear,’ yelled someone in
the crowd, and everyone laughed.
Finally, Callodyn
himself spoke. ‘The Kingdoms of Angel and Men have always had a
purpose for God and if it has been proven useful, God will use it. I
am assured by the theophany that God was faithful to Israel on earth,
and such things were necessary to keep faith in the word of God. But
in heaven all God’s children shall find his grace and their own
desired purposes, for God is not a taskmaster to deny the freedom and
sovereignty so many of us truly desire.’’
And
Michael, under his breath, said ‘Amen.’
* * * *
*
Ariel was talking with Daniel. ‘Danny. You were
raised with the Rothchild’s. But, you were never
circumcised?’
‘No. The family was Christian to start with.
David never got circumcised either, and never had Michael done. He
didn’t really bother. Still hasn’t done it yet.’
‘Oh,’
responded Ariel. ‘And that didn’t bother the Israelites?’
‘Uh,
David tells me that for him they all assumed it. He never actually
disclosed that he wasn’t. I never told anyone either, but I mainly
associated with Callodyn later on anyway. Went back to my Daly
family. I was just an observant Noahide. Didn’t bother with Karaite
Judaism anymore. Didn’t see a point.’
‘So the Messiah
and Archangel of Israel were not ever circumcised. You don’t find
that a little bit ironic?’
‘Uh, sweetie, they were never
Israelites. They were indeed Rothchild’s, but had left the faith of
Israel for quite a while. They were officially Christians, and when
they left that they could only be regarded by God as Noahides in
being restored to God’s Israelite family. The theophany cleared
that up with me once.’
‘Oh. I see.’
‘Yes. But
David was so righteous in his walk with God that Destiny had shaped
him to be Messiah. Technically the Messiah didn’t have to be an
observant Israelite – he just had to be descended from Jesse
through David. It was only descent which Isaiah 11 spoke of. I think
God chose that role for him a long time ago, but he was never meant
to be circumcised. That wasn’t part of the deal.’
‘But
the newborn Israelites – they still circumcise now.’
‘Not
all of them. Certainly not all of them in the heavenlies. It doesn’t
seem to strictly apply.’
‘So Noahides don’t
circumcise.’
‘No real point, Ariel.’
‘What role
did you serve – In Israel with David?’
‘I only visited
Jerusalem once. Only ever once, in younger years, on holiday to visit
David. I didn’t like the place at all. Too many rabbis, too many
dressed in black, too bloody old fashioned and just, quite frankly,
too bloody many Jews for me.’
‘That is not an anti-Semitic
tone I hear, is it?’
‘Oh God. Possibly. Hey, I am a proud
Irishman if you really must know, Ariel. I love my English mother and
adore the Empire, but I am a son of the Emerald Isle in the end. I’m
a Daly, and proud of it.’
‘But David says you are
officially the Prince of Jerusalem in status.’
‘Oh, yes. I
have heard about that. That is here, though, in the Realm. Danielphon
is in Zaphona which sort of equates with Jerusalem on earth.
Apparently I am the most regular citizen of everyone, surprisingly.
More than Ambriel or Michael or any of the others. Actually, you and
me, from what I have been told, have lived here longer than anyone
else.’
‘Yes. And David says you are now Prince of
Jerusalem because of it.’
Daniel looked at her. ‘He said
that to you, did he? I had heard some recent murmurings after the
first Arc was completed that I personally had the record. I mean, I
know I was on Televon from time to time for a few thousand years, but
thinking it over there has been about 950,000 plus years spent here
in Danielphon. I haven’t really left, I guess.’
‘And now
you are the Prince.’
‘Fancy that,’ responded Daniel.
‘But, if you want to know the honest truth, if I can achieve the
glory I am after much later, I plan on moving to Danielphora and
being overseer of Danielphora and, hopefully, the Arch-Regent of the
entire Realm under God’s authority. He is King, but I desire
Arch-Regency with Valandriel as Prime-Minister, and the regular
rotating Overseer of the entire realm forms the triplet.’
‘And
Michael?’
‘Ah. He is overseer specifically of Zaphora –
the central disc – in the end. Just this disc. I doubt very much,
personally, from all that I have heard, that the overseers position
over the entire realm will ever stop progressing on the list of
angels of rank. Pretty sure that is established, now.’
‘Oh,’
said Ariel. ‘I see.’
‘But you will get your glory as
well, Ariel. They will name a disc after you, and you will get your
turn as overseer of the Realm and of your own disc.’
She
looked at him. ‘We will be apart?’
‘Look. I have thought
about that already. I guess you can delegate for most of the time and
live with me in Danielphon if you want to, and some of the time I can
spend with you on your disc. That doesn’t matter that much, does
it?’
‘Oh, no. I suppose not.’
‘Then it is
settled.’
She nodded. It was settled.
* * * *
*
‘How long did you live on Earth, Danny?’ Ariel
asked her husband, the second time that day she had bothered him with
questions on past history.
‘The life of a tree, Ariel. The
life of a tree.’
‘What is that supposed to mean?’
‘Isaiah
65 promised the elect the life of trees. I was there a bloody long
time, ok. Nearly as long as Callodyn, who went on a bit longer. But
he was younger, and I think all up I probably took him in year
count.’
‘And how long was that?’
‘Mmmm. Well,
there was a resurrection, and I was around before that had happened.
But I lived on beyond the resurrection and never actually died, like
Callodyn. I was taken to heaven instead, like Enoch had been. Like
Elijah had been.’
‘Oh,’ she said. ‘I didn’t know
that.’
‘Yes. My body has been adjusted to eternity –
that was done pretty quickly – but I never saw death. I had the
promise of Isaiah 25 over my life. I had prayed for that and God had
granted it to me. It was the tree of life I modelled myself on, from
the choices of the trees which Isaiah 65 might perchance reference if
it had to.’
‘Smart move.’
‘Thanks.’
‘So,
how long before you were taken?’
‘It was over a thousand
years. That is all you need to know. I don’t want to talk about it,
though. Very private memories. Very private.’
‘Why?’
‘Well…If
you must know, well. Well there were a lot of women I knew. A lot of
them. I ended up having quite a number of children, and I don’t
want to provoke you to jealousy, sweetheart. I married a large number
of times, and had a large number outside of marriage as well. But
those days are gone, now. Forgotten.’
‘Yes, I knew you had
seed out there. A lot of it.’
‘I don’t always talk about
it. Sometimes I just shield this information to people – let them
think something about my life which just wasn’t true in the end.
But I don’t want to go over all the details with every Tom, Dick
and Harry. Really, I’d rather not. Callodyn was the same. Exactly
the same. Flaunted a sort of virginity with a lot of people. Claimed
he had no children for a long time, which was utter rubbish. Absolute
utter rubbish.’
‘Really?’ she exclaimed.
‘But
don’t tell him I said that. He has a reputation he doesn’t want
sullied. But, like me, he was equally as promiscuous. He just didn’t
tell that many.
Ariel laughed. Callodyn and Daniel – two
peas in a pod.
Chapter
Seven
Ambriel had been chatting with Ariel all
afternoon and the Theophany had returned for the night. He had some
questions he wanted to ask him. ‘God. Should I now
circumcise?’
‘Why would you want to do that? You don’t
intend following Judaism, do you? That was for earth. The Seraphim
Torah is what I gave you. I don’t expect anything more than that
for your morality. Oh, the Realm Laws formed by Council are important
for society as it grows – in fact fundamental – but in the spirit
of freedom of Eden, it is the Seraphim Torah I require you to
continue studying, my son.’
Ambriel nodded. ‘And that is
all? You don’t want me to convert to Judaism?’
‘There
would be little point. It is a human religion for earthly realities.
It has little to no place for angels. It is not appropriate for them.
So, if you really must know, I would prefer if you didn’t. It could
create problems, especially with Daniel. He would not like you to.
Quite against that.’
Ambriel nodded. He had surmised as
much. ‘Then I won’t.’
‘Good decision,’ responded
God. And for all eternity Ambriel never broached the subject with God
again, and left Judaism in its own place in the world.
*
* * * *
Metatron had followed God quite a distance
upwards from home, right into the pinnacle of God’s glory.
Eventually they neared an object which had gradually become visible,
and the two of them came to rest on rather a large looking machine.
Metatron looked at it. ‘What is it?’
The theophany smiled.
‘A huge weight off my mind and workload. It is the Disc-Creator
Version 1.’
‘The Disc creator?’
‘Yep,’
responded God.
‘What does it do?’ queried the curious
Metatron.
‘Why, it makes discs, of course.’
‘Realm
Discs? For Infinity and Eternity and the others.’
‘Precisely,’
responded God. ‘They have finally gotten around to what they want
for the foundational discs, and I don’t need to fiddle around any
more with requests for specifics – I have the basic formulas all
worked out now, and this machine spits them out
automatically.’
‘Were does the matter come from?’
queried Metatron. ‘Don’t you still have to create it all?’
‘I
have.’
‘Huh?’
‘A lump of solid matter is used.
It could really be any size, but I created a cube of about 1
centimetre cubed, just for the sake of it. It is solid black. It
contains the structural material for an endless supply of discs.
Eternally so if I want.’
‘Can I look at it,’ asked
Metatron.
God opened a compartment on the machine and took out
the cube. Metatron looked at it. ‘Its solid black. Everything can
come from that?’
‘Indeed it can,’ responded God. ‘Now
the machine is programmed to very soon spit out discs at a uniform
rate. After a while it will leap frog beyond all attempts to settle
the discs quickly, but I don’t care anymore. Going slow was fun to
start with, but I will allow the machine to take over now.’
‘And
the naming of the discs?’
‘The council can do that now.
And when they become too long I will provide them with a USB drive
which will automatically create a new disc name for all the latter
discs.’
‘Mmm.’ Nodded Metatron. ‘Have you done a
planet creator for the humans?’
‘Why, yes. Finished that
last week. Same basic design – just a little bit of different
fiddling. Same stuff.’
‘What about the new angels? Do you
continue with that project?’
‘I have an Angel Generator
now. I have placed my spirit within the substance of the generator,
endowed it with a large portion of my concern and love and care, but
it is programmed to spit out the ratio of original angelic genomes I
desire. It is all finished. The angels will simply be born in the new
throne-rooms of each new keep as they are established. They will be
using shorter names for their own communities, and the discs of
length will have shorter names, but they will also all have original
full-length names to signify their originality, though eventually
they will be beyond the comprehension of everyone except me. But it
was a requirement I put on myself.’
‘I see,’ said
Metatron, looking at the machine. ‘Then most of your work is
done?’
‘Now I have a good time. I have worked on my PC at
home to now include a prayer receiving device which processes
requests to meet me personally from everybody. I have assigned one
official day every millennium to meet someone new.’
‘Is
that all?’
‘Well, it is going to take forever,
practically, anyway for people later on in history to meet me, such
being the length of the cue, so I will not put too much on my plate.
People can pray to meet me as many times as they want, and I will
eventually make that known to everyone. But only one official new
home visitor every thousand years. But as a Theophany I have no
desire to replicate myself, so it is only one on one. That is the way
I want it.’
‘Right,’ said Metatron, again looking at
that machine. ‘Mmm. Can you do that on my PC also? I get a
neverending request to meet up from all sorts.’
‘I will be
creating a USB creating machine to create USB’s for connection to
PC’s for my elder children to deal with the problem of requests to
meet them. In fact, for all the really famous citizens of the realm,
it will be made available. Lots of people will need the device after
a while.’
‘Sound’s cool,’ responded Metatron.
‘They
can adjust the timing rate of recipients at will, but it will only
accept them in chronological order. That is my will on the
subject.’
‘I understand,’ responded Metatron.
‘Good,’
said God.
They continued staring at the machine for some time
more, before finally floating back down to home and getting back to
there prior activities.
* * * * *
‘Still
and Calm Waters. Still and Calm Waters. Still and Calm Waters. Relax.
Think of Nothing. Imagine – there you are – on Golden Lake.
Floating on Still and Calm Waters. Relax. It is you and the Lake and
God and nothing else. Nothing Else. Still and Calm Waters. Still and
Calm Waters. Still and Calm Waters. Peace.’
The voice
stopped speaking on the ‘Relaxation CD’ and Gabriel, lying on the
floor of an upper quiet room of Zaphon, the floor covered in thick
padded mats, was in peace. A peace he needed.
Blaze
was still on his mind. His son – lost to him. The sin of Cain.
Aquariel had recovered somewhat since the incident, but she was still
somewhat depressed. Still feeling down and sorrowful about it
all.
Murder was a rarity in the Realm of Eternity or
humanity’s civilizations. Very rare. There had been, out on New
Terra, the Dragon Wars for a time, when a number of dark demons had
terrorized many. But that time had passed, and lawlessness seemed, as
it was supposed to be, a thing for earth and nothing more. But
murder, while extremely rare, did occasionally happen. About one in a
trillion or so souls, statistically, were killed by deliberate action
in the Realm. Not many, relatively speaking, but too many as far as
Gabriel was concerned. Especially considering his own son was guilty
of such an act.
Other deaths occasionally resulted
from accidents and very bad health choices, such as extreme use of
certain recreational drugs, a lifetime of alcohol addiction, or a
lifetime of cigarette abuse and so on, as well a the rarity of dying
from extreme obesity, which did happen as well. But such things,
again, were rare. Each cause of death about as rare as murder in the
end as well.
Life had been structured like that in the
Realm – people were supposed to be very hard to kill – very hard.
It was generally accepted that the dead rested in Sheol – a place
of the grave, were souls had a shadow of a life, and little more. But
that was mostly speculation – God would not share.
Jason,
presumably, was in such a resting place. Down in the shadows, down in
the darkness. Resting. Recovering from his ordeal. Gabriel felt for
Talzudiel’s son, and had incessantly prayed that God would watch
over him, wherever he was, whatever ordeal he was dealing
with.
But in the end, no more could he do than that.
No more. Words of comfort, well…. Well they seemed lacking. Nothing
really could be said. But, perhaps. Perhaps in time, with healing,
sanity could be restored. Sanity and something of the semblance of a
normal life for Archangel Gabriel, Secondborn Seraphim of the Realm
of Eternity and Overseer of God for this special Realm of
Angels.
* * * * *
‘Daniel.’ It was
Ariel again. The questions seemed to never end these days. ‘Do you
have anything to do with the Celestine Prophecy?’
Daniel
smiled to himself. Time to confess. ‘Uh, well. Yes. I guess you
have seen a copy of the book in my library.’
‘You have a
number of Redfield’s books there that I have noticed. Are you
involved with his movement?’
‘Mm. Well, yes. Actually. I
am a life member of the Celestine Foundation, officially calling
myself a Celestine – the group are called Celestines in plural
form. But there are numerous groups now, many calling themselves such
names as Celestines, Celestinians, Celestineals, Celestinites and
Celestials. And various organisations, oh, such as the Celestine
Foundation which I am part of, as well as Celestial Blessing,
Celestine Warriors of Virtue, The Celestine Brigade, The Celestine
Way and the Celestine Prophets, amongst numerous others. They are now
well established groups, but with the New Agenda there has been an
avalanche of new projects gotten underway, each focusing on a
particular way of the Celestine or a particular Interpretive
approach, or sometimes just different ways of building the temples
and organising the services.’
‘So it is standard religion
is it? I have never bothered with the book.’
‘It’s
monotheism. The Celestine Prophecy itself is technically just a novel
presenting some of Redfield’s ideas, and a lot of it is
controversial with a lot of people, evolutionary ideas and so on. But
it reads damn well and what attracts me to it, mainly, is the strong
ethic it represents. I find it inspiring.’
‘Inspiring?’
she queried.
‘Very. I read the work from time to time and
visit the Foundation to hear an occasional sermon. You find them here
and there, but it is a big Realm after all.’
She nodded,
taking that in. ‘Should I join?’
‘Oh my God. Ariel a
Celestine. Whatever will happen next? Look, sure sweety. But you
should read the book first – see if it is for you. You might like
it, but you might not.’
‘I will,’ she responded. And
then, sitting there, looking at him, she persisted with this line of
inquiry. ‘Are there…’ she trailed off and he looked at
her.
‘What, Ariel?’
‘Are there any more religious
organisations that you are part of? Any that you haven’t told me
about?’
‘Oh Christ,’ he said to himself. His religious
affiliations of all things. ‘Well, yes. Yes there are. Quite a hell
of a lot of them now. I am a contributing member to way too many of
them for me to bring to mind just now, but there are the older ones
which I have quite strong affiliations with.’
‘Which
ones?’
‘The Catholic Church. It was my first human
religious experience. I have never left it. But I also joined Potters
House Christian Church and the United Pentecostal Church, and was
baptised in both of them for various reasons. I am still strongly
affiliated with those churches. I try to visit them at lest once
every thousand years or so. I have quite a large number of official
church attendances in each of them now. Quite a large number. Well
over 4,000 attendances for Potter’s House.’
‘Oh, that is
the Pentecostal one you like.’
‘That’s them. I usually
go off to Canbraphora now and visit various Canberra City Numbered
Potters House services.’
She nodded. That was interesting,
as he didn’t always tell her the places he went off to.
‘What
else?’
‘Mmm. I visit the Baptist church, the Uniting
Church, the Presbyterian Church, Revival Fellowship, The
Christadelphians, The Jehovah’s Witnesses, The Anglican Church, The
Assembly of God, Harvest Christian Fellowship, The Lutheran Church,
The Mormon Church, The Church of Christ as well as various Bahai and
Jewish assemblies from time to time as well. Oh, and my own Muslim
Assembly which I formed – the ones which accept the Second Quran as
a text of spiritual significance.’
‘That is the one you
wrote, isn’t it?’
‘Yes. It never really caught on in any
major way with Muslims – they claimed it was mainly just my own
work, so didn’t really care. But there is a lot of interest from
progressive Muslims these days, simply because it was the first
official ‘Second Quran’. It was an historical interest with a lot
of them after a while, but mainly liberally minded Muslims.
Traditional ones find it something of a humorous article, to put it
bluntly, but not to take too seriously. But that is fine to me. It
doesn’t really bother me either way.’
‘Was it inspired,
dear brother? It seems to make that claim.’
‘Whatever God
had in the writing of it is beyond me – in truth I simply wrote
what came to mind. So it may be inspired, but I can’t really prove
any such truth. It was, yes, mainly my conception. But I tell people
who ask that question now anyway. No point in denying it.’
‘Right,’
she said. ‘Well, are there any others? Religions?’
‘Quite
a few. I am an Eckist from way back. The Religion of the Light and
Sound of God. I have something of an occasional affiliation with
Scientology. And there are now quite a number of New Agenda
religions, monotheist ones, with interesting spiritual philosophies
which I have joined. Both to stay abreast with current religious
knowledge, but also to continue to find Haven’s of the soul were
people have new spirit to offer us all. New homes of spirituality. A
lot of them I really do like, and have really committed to quite
strongly. I can’t visit them all at once, but intend to place
future seed in a lot of these organisations.’
‘Our
children?’
‘And others. I want strong connections with a
large array of spiritual bodies. That is how I think.’
‘Are
you a member of Messiah Ministries? Ambriel’s organisation.’
‘No,’
responded Daniel.
‘No? After all this time you still haven’t
joined.
‘No,’ he responded again. ‘I won’t join that
one. Not interested.’
‘Why not?’
‘Now that
would be telling, dear sister. That would be
telling.’
‘Interesting,’ she said to herself, but said
nothing more.
* * * * *
Ariel again.
‘Daniel, who formed Haven Noahide Fellowship? And the others.
Assembly of the Divine Creator, Universal Faith Assembly, Assembly of
the Living God, Universal Truth Assembly, Assembly of the Most High
and Haven Adamide Fellowship. Who formed those? The 7 Divine
Fellowships, as they are called.’
Daniel turned to her. ‘I
thought everyone knew that. It was Callodyn, of course. A major
preoccupation for him.’
‘Really,’ she said. ‘I was
speaking with God this morning, and he told me that it was in fact
yourself who formed the 7 fellowships. That you were the driving
force behind setting the names, the doctrine, and the early
writings.’
Daniel looked guilty. She wasn’t really
supposed to know that. ‘Yeh, sure. I got Callodyn off to a great
start. But he was the one who took them to heart and ran with them
and did the real work of getting them established through all his
evangelistic efforts. I just let him run with it.’
‘Right,’
she said. ‘But you officially started them, conceived of them, and
developed the doctrine.’
‘Mmm. Yes. I had some interest to
start with, but it was not until Callodyn got a hold of the project
that it really became a reality. It then started going ahead quite
strongly. Good numbers, now, as well. Very good numbers.’
She
came and sat next to him. ‘So are they really your spiritual
babies, then? You don’t speak of it, but you love them,
right.’
Daniel said nothing. He attended all 7 Divine
Fellowships quite regularly, more than any other association, but
kept that to himself. But Ariel had worked it out, so there was no
point in trying to hide it.
‘Look, yes. They are my babies.
And I am proud of Callodyn’s effort in developing them. He deserves
a medal for his effort. But my own ministry, now. Daniel the Seraphim
Ministries. That is my main project. I have a lot I could say about
what I want with the ministry, but will let it happen gradually and
naturally. But I do have sort of a main goal with it.’
‘Which
is?’
‘A comprehensive analysis of all the major spiritual
paradigms of importance – every significant and major spiritual
issue, especially the fruit the New Agenda in time – and turning my
findings into a cohesive and sensible religion which is meant to be
both universal, to have great depth in its spiritual meaning and
significance for people, and to resound thoroughly with all the great
and accepted spiritual truths of life. It is me trying to get it
pretty much exactly right, Ariel. It will be quite a life involvement
for people in the end – it will give them spiritual food to focus
on which is meant to be a spirituality of eternity in nature – able
to stand not the test of time, but the test of eternity. So a broad,
deep and significant spiritual experience in which a true and eternal
home can be found by every member. Getting it perfectly
right.’
‘Sounds wonderful,’ she said.
‘Which is
why I have taken my time. Letting it develop slowly and carefully.
Treading down the spiritual avenues of many of the successful
religions and getting it perfect.’
‘I wish you
luck.’
‘Thank you dear sister, Ariel. Thank you.’
*
* * * *
She turned on the stereo, put on the record,
something she had begun collecting, and set it to the track ‘Love
Bites’. The album was ‘Hysteria’ by ‘Def Leppard’.
Perfect.
Andrew came back into the room, having gone
to the toilet, and sat down on the couch, listening to Jessica’s
record playing, now recognizing the song. ‘Def Leppard,’ he
said.
‘Yes,’ she nodded.
She sat down next to him,
poured out some cold ice tea from a pitcher, handed him a glass and
poured herself a glass, and drank – cautiously.
‘So, how
is Bianca?’
‘She’s good,’ said the nervous Andrew.
‘Very good.’
‘And she knows you have come to visit
me?’
‘She knows,’ he said.
‘Good,’ responded
Jessica.
They sat there, listening to the song and,
shortly, ‘Pour some sugar on me’ started playing, and she looked
at him. ‘I like this song. You know. Love it. Would love to have
someone pour some sugar on me.’
Andrew smiled to himself. At
least she was being obvious enough in her intentions. At least she
wasn’t pretending. He smiled to himself, though, and said
nothing.
After a while of her staring at him,
realizing he wasn’t going to bite, she tried another approach. She
got up, pulled close the curtains, and dimmed the lights. And, going
to the record player, she put on ‘All I Wanna Do Is Make Love To
You’. They sat there, in the darkness, the record playing, and
Andrew continued drinking his ice tea, saying nothing. Slowly,
carefully, she leaned against him and put her hand on his knee. He
didn’t do anything. The song was set to repeat, and when it started
again, she moved her hand upwards a little. Further up his leg.
Still, no resistance. And, finally, she moved it completely, resting
on his crotch, and softly, massaged it a little. Softly. He became
hard quite quickly. She turned to look right at him, and he turned to
her. She gave him a soft look and said, ‘Well?’
He
said nothing, and she stopped massaging and took off her black
woollen jumper. And then, in a Tee Shirt, she took that off and had
nothing underneath, her beautiful breasts looking perky, her nipples
standing to attention. He did nothing. So she massaged his crotch
some more and took his right hand and placed it on her breast. He did
not resist. And she said to him, ‘Stroke me, Andrew. Give me some
sugar.’ But he just looked at her, and, seeming to have finally
made up his mind, stood, walked off a little, and stared at her. She
just looked at him helplessly.
‘I. I have to go now,
Jessica. I have to go.’ He looked at her, in her glory, her
feminine beautiful glory, and he realized what he could have right
there and then if he wanted it. But he thought on the one he was
currently with, he thought on Bianca, and realized he did not want to
make the same mistake twice. He didn’t want to do that.
He
looked her over one last time, walked to the doorway of the flat,
smiled at her and said. ‘Look, we can catch up again sometime. But
I’ve got to go. Ok. Well, Seeya.’ And with one last look, he
turned, opened the door, and disappeared into the night.
She
sat there for a few moments, eventually put back on her Tee Shirt,
her black jumper and, stopping the record, she put on the lights,
went into the kitchen, sat at the table, and started eating one of
the two meals she had prepared for that evening. ‘Great,’ she
said with soft sarcasm finally under her breath. ‘Great.’
*
* * * *
Bianca listened carefully as he confessed
every detail, hiding nothing, and she said nothing in the end. She
looked at him and realized, in truth, he still loved Jessica. That he
still loved her sincerely. So she brushed over the incident. Really,
why even bother to complain. Why even bother. She smiled at him
seated next to him on the couch and said, ‘Well, good to hear. I
guess she still loves you.’
‘Is that all you have to say,’
he said confused. She looked at him, nodded, and that was
that.
Later that evening, watching the TV, Andrew
looked at Bianca. She was someone to keep, this lady. Someone to
keep. Perhaps forever. She had grace. She could face reality, and not
complain. She could do that and still love her man. And, knowing in
his heart he would always love her he thought on Jessica and said to
himself, in torn emotion, ‘Why me?’
* * * *
*
It was a truth – the role of Messiah quite
apparently carried a divine sanction, but in light of recent words
Ambriel was question, something which he had rarely done, just how
legitimate or, more importantly, just how necessary his own ministry
really was. I mean, in the end, all things considered, why bother
reinventing the wheel. What more did he, in truth, really
offer?
There were many things a person could think
about in life and occupy themselves with. Religion and religious
virtue was certainly one of these things, and it was stressed as
being important by a large number of religious leaders to enable
life, in generally, to function more smoothly with a more ambient,
calm, peaceful, respectful and orderly way of life. Flowing from God,
religious virtue was some of the oil which allowed society to
function peacefully and well, and such ideas had always been part of
the drive behind David’s Messiah Ministries. It was a truth – he
had not really started a new Torah regime – mainly, as Jesus had
once suggested, a large compilation of Psalms and Proverbs and then,
as he had seen fit, a very big concentration on LOVE. Love was
absolutely fundamental to Ambriel – absolutely fundamental. The
spirit of love, which he was told often surrounded him, gave the
heart and mind of a person, especially one struggling in life, such
divine and blessed consolation that all things seemed bearable and
all things seemed possible and worthwhile. Love was such a vital part
of being alive.
That was truth from which Ambriel
would never stray and, yes in truth, a fundamental part of Messiah
Ministries.
But lately he had been questioning,
despite perhaps thinking he should convict himself on the issue, but
lately he had been wondering if he should simply let go of his
ministerial work and, to put it bluntly, let people to whom he
ministered find the divine truths for themselves – by their own
efforts. Really, in the end, why did he need to? Wouldn’t people
find the heart of God in the end if they were supposed to or cared
enough anyway?
What was he doing in loving people? Was
he saving them, or just being a balm to their sorrows? And, if they
didn’t go on and learn love themselves, was there any real point?
So many to whom he ministered had gone on to be very loving and
decent people, his primary concern. But would they not have done this
in the end themselves anyway? Would not such people, attracted to his
ministry, not have eventually worked it out by their own effort
eventually for themselves? He questioned this.
Daniel,
his brother, he sensed within him a spirit of humility about the
spirit of love which surrounded Ambriel. In truth, he knew Daniel was
not jealous, but he also knew that Daniel did not really care that
much anyway. That he was not particularly impressed with Ambriel’s
spirit, as if something better in the heart of Daniel was on
offer.
That confused Ambriel – what could possibly
be greater than Love?
But he left that idea alone, and
simply kept faith in his older brother, accepting him for what he
was.
Michael, though, accepted him implicitly and
praised him often for his Ministerial work and the joy he brought to
countless souls. And, because of such praises, and, in the end,
finding that the work did in fact make him genuinely happy and was
something useful to do in life, Ambriel felt he would ultimately
continue with his work. But sometimes he wondered. Sometimes he
wondered.
* * * * *
God floated on the
still and calm waters of Golden Lake. Resting. At peace.
He
was in the private Seraphim section, cut off from the rest of the
lake which had an enormous waiting cue for its use. But there were
privileges in being God himself.
God’s mind absorbed
things. The theophany of God was, in many ways, one with his eternal
spirit, with the spirit of Yahweh, but the theophany also had unique
characteristics – characteristics very similar to his angelic and
human offspring. But that was deliberate.
God himself,
in theophanic form, could technically have sexual relations if he
wanted to. That had long been available. But he had been concerned
about bringing more children to life in this manner for the sheer
concern of possible jealousy such children might bring. But, in the
end, he would do so. In the end he would find a suitable mate, either
angelic or human, and have his own family. This, for a number of
reasons. To show all his offspring that he could relate in family
terms in the way they needed to know he could, and further, to set an
example with the way he raised and taught his own children for the
rest of his offspring to learn for their own families. Yes, there
were a number of positives associated with the idea, and in time God
would allow this course of action to eventuate.
But
not for now. Not for now. Instead, he would remain single,
unattached, happy enough to be himself and occupy his mind and
actions with the things which he occupied his mind and actions
with.
Life was good at the moment – under control –
which it usually was for him. There were always voices of distress
which his heart and spirit saw too, with whom he would surround with
quiet and gentle consolation, encouraging to have strength and hope
to persevere. He would not, though, always surround so obviously –
in fact, not to be noticed at all was often his usual intention.
Sometimes, though, for deeply spiritual people, he would be there,
and they would notice his presence – his calming touch – and such
would be the reward for devotions. But, in general, it was time and
patience among people which brought them alive to the Spirit of the
Divine. Time and patience.
He floated there, on the
still and calm waters of Golden Lake, a tranquil and gentle spirit
surrounding him and, the wind blowing in the trees, the golden leaves
ready to fall, everything was right in the world – everything, for
the moment, was at peace. Everything.
PART
TWO
‘In the Hearts of Men’
Chapter
Eight
‘Daniel. How careful are you? I mean, well,
sexually.’
‘Oh God. You have never had a problem, have
you? The Doctor has never raised anything?’
‘No. I check
regularly.’
‘Good to hear. Well, ok. There was this one
time, I mean, technically, technically, that might have been
considered adultery to some. This one time with Meludiel, when she
was with Ambriel and sort of married, that she needed a bit. That was
the only one time. But even then I checked myself that afternoon with
a basic blood tester. Yes, when I was young on earth I fornicated
with prostitutes nearly about 40 times. But that was the end of it. I
had myself tested, found I had no problems, and totally gave that
away. Even then it had been the law to have safe sex with a condom,
and every occasion I used the condom. And I have never fornicated
since that day without having the blood test right away with the
woman, both of us being tested for everything beforehand. And there
were never any occasions of adultery – at least none that I am
aware of. Every time I asked – every time I made absolutely sure of
that – that she was single. Besides, for over the last 900,000
years I have only had sexual relations in marriage. I only fornicated
early on, and then gave that away also. I decided, even though I was
testing for STIs every time, there was no point in even risking that.
So now I am completely faithful.’
‘And there have been no
other types of sexual promiscuity? If you know what I mean.’
He
gave her a funny look and then smiled. ‘Oh, for heaven’s sake.
The number of times I read Leviticus 18 and Leviticus 20 was beyond
count in the end. No, Ariel, I have never been a buggerer, a
bestiality boy, incestuous, slept with both a woman and her sister,
the menstrual thing, or anything at all like that. And I have never,
ever, been drunk, and never, ever, done drugs – the illegal ones.
In fact, I don’t think I have ever been arrested from memory,
either.’
‘Mmm,’ she nodded. ‘Very good. I am glad to
hear that.’
‘Oh. Callodyn. He has been drunk once. Once at
a Christmas party, but he has stayed well clear of all those sorts of
problems as well. Very well clear.’
‘So you think those
problems will never eventuate?’
‘Never,’ responded
Daniel, firmly.
‘Never?’ she queried again.
‘Never!’
he finished. And, somehow, for the remainder of eternity, such
problems in fact never seemed to arise for Daniel the Seraphim.
*
* * * *
‘Well, what about your other sins, oh Daniel
the Holy One? Blasphemy?’
‘I have never hated God, really.
Never. I don’t think I have ever really blasphemed him in my heart
– in my deep heart. I have never forsaken him since knowing he
existed. Early on, even after Yah had spoken to me, I still looked
into deistic concepts occasionally – just trying to make sure that
Yah was the true God – but I always acknowledged that Yah existed
as well since knowing him – I never denied his existence. And I am
pretty sure I have always liked God. Liked his style, his nature, his
holiness. I have always admired him and thought well of him. Yes, I
have insulted him from time to time over certain issues I have been
aggravated on, but I really only do this in my personal space in my
personal time. Not around people. I would hardly ever do that. I have
done that, but it is extremely rare. But I have never been in trouble
with anyone because I have always loved God and he has cleared me of
any problems. And, gradually, that problem has been receding anyway.
I am coming to understand his eternal goodness and holiness, and
realize that I should just keep my mouth shut and grin and bear it –
understanding comes over time and I should not be to hasty to
judge.’
Ariel smiled at him. That was acceptable to her.
‘Well. Mmm. Theft?’’
‘Shit,’ he said, under his
breath. ‘When I was human I stole from my mother’s purse and
dad’s money quite a bit until I was about 18 to 20. I also ran with
a group of kids and I stole things like fantasy books and science
fiction books, and other shoplifting items. This lasted until I was
about 20, I think. There was a lot pinched from mum and dad, which I
spent on lollies and ice creams and chocolates and arcade money, and
so on. In fact, I started doing that way back in Berridale as soon as
I knew what money could buy. I was a little devil.’
‘But
you gave it away?’
‘A little later on, when living with
mum, I borrowed money from her purse from time to time, sometimes
leaving notes saying what I had borrowed, and sometimes not. I would
usually pay her back, and she knew about it. I tried to justify this
to myself by the fact I paid her a boarding allowance each fortnight
regularly, and never went over how much I had given her. Never
anywhere near, all up. But I cut that out after a while as well. I
was still convicted, even though she knew I was borrowing money. It
was usually in the early mornings, when I wanted to go off and use
the internet at the shopping mall. Very early. She was asleep a lot,
and I wasn’t bothered to wake her. There were a few occasions, at
night, when I borrowed money without asking just before pay day and
went off and visited those prostitutes I told you about. I didn’t
ask, but when my pension came in the following morning I would
replace the money. It was sort of unethical what I was doing, and I
cut it out after a while. I finally got over it.’
She
nodded. Interesting. ‘Violence. Have you ever been violent?’
‘I
was really quite a gentle kid for most of the time. Not many
problems. Very nerdy. I had about three arranged fights in school.
The first time I didn’t do anything but resist the guy, and the
second time it was, as I said, arranged, and I got a black eye. The
third time was with a guy who couldn’t fight very well, and I hit
him a bit, but every time there was nothing at all like beating up on
a guy, and it was just a few punches. I was really convicted after
the third time and repented hard that afternoon. This was while I was
a kid. Oh, there were some fights with my older brother, but they
were on domestic issues, and time healed those problems. When I was
unwell I pushed my mother once because she was constantly hassling me
to my face about my un-wellness, and another time, I really think it
was the spirit of God in me, I clobbered her on her ears because I
was really pissed off with her Catholic idolatry as I saw it. I mean,
God had made it clear to me through personal revelation that idolatry
was a death penalty, so I justify that time I clobbered her ears
because it was a big argument. But, in anger, there has never been
anything like that.’
‘And that is all?’
‘I
pushed my sis, once, but that was just a shoving thing. I didn’t
intend for her to fall over, which she did. It was mainly an
accident. She was being very bossy and insisting on her way and in my
face like my mother had been a lot of the time as well. I tend not to
argue with people but I do get annoyed with people who harass me all
the time, which my mother did constantly. She was always insulting me
and complaining and was not a great lady to get along with. She
fought with everyone in the family from time to time anyway. Really,
I ended up thinking she was quite hypocritical.’
‘Do you
see her much?’
‘Not much anymore. I couldn’t be
bothered. I don’t want the aggravation, sweetheart. I don’t like
her ways, and she persists in shouting and being aggressive. She is
not very holy to me.’
‘Oh,’ said Ariel, and refrained
from asking him questions after that.
* * * *
*
‘Anyway,’ said Daniel. ‘Those things are
ancient history. I have moved on. Gotten over it. There is a lot of
water under the bridge since my sins of youth.’
‘So you
are a different man, now?’
‘I take holiness very seriously
in the end, Ariel. Very seriously. When I was young I went through a
lot of growing pains and a lot of frustrations. But I learned to cope
with all those things and to do it the righteous and proper way. It
took time, but I dealt with all the negative behaviour. These days,
apparently, I have a pretty good witness with people. From time to
time I hear that I set a good example.’
Ariel came over to
her beloved, kissed him on the cheek, and nodded. ‘I just wanted to
hear about those things, Daniel. To clear up some issues that I had
been emailed on by some people.’
‘By family members.’
She
nodded. ‘They don’t quite see things the way you do, but say they
understand.’
‘It is why I left them, in the end, Ariel. I
don’t argue with you at all, or anyone we know. I think you know
that. But when I am around my old family the arguments just seem to
pop up. And I hate it. So perhaps you can see the way it really
is.’
She kissed him again, and he seemed relieved. The
recent tension in Danielphon seemed, now, diminished. Skeletons had
been aired, and peace had been restored.
* * * *
*
Ambriel sat with Meludiel. She looked at him and,
after conversing with Ariel, decided it was time. ‘Any skeleton’s
in your closet, David Rothchild. Any skeletons?’
He turned
to her, and smiled to himself. ‘Why do you ask?’
‘Daniel
aired his with Ariel. Nothing to serious. Ancient sins, apparently.
Sins of youth. But he had never been arrested, a very important thing
with Ariel.’
David smiled. Oh Daniel San. ‘Uh. I am not
quite that innocent, Mel. Not quite that. There have been a few
things, over the years. The occasional impropriety. The occasional
illegal activity. But very rare, and over a million years they don’t
add up to much. Me and Michael are about the same level on
this.’
‘No arrests?’
‘4 times. Just 4 times. I
have been drunk about 80 times in the million years, but nothing
more.’
She nodded. ‘Daniel has never been drunk. Any
illicit drug use?’
‘I dealt in drugs in the Realm of
Eternity for about a decade once, at certain parties I attended. It
was the in thing with the crowd I was hanging with at the time. I was
arrested 4 times all up. I did drugs a fair bit in those years, but
eventually went sober. But God never raised the issue with me. He
never complained.’
‘Sexuality?’
‘Oooh. Yes.
There have been a dozen or so acts of adultery, with women who have
confessed there love for me.’
‘I didn’t know that,’
she said smiling.
‘Mmm. But that is not too many is it?’
he asked innocently. ‘I mean, in a million years that is a pretty
good record, isn’t it?’
Meludiel thought about that. She
thought about it very, very seriously, and a little spirit in her
heart said to her. ‘He is one of the holiest people in the Realm of
Eternity. Just like Daniel. He is excellent. Don’t worry about
it.’
‘Yes,’ she said, throwing her arms around him.
‘That is an excellent record.
* * * * *
Elenniel
was talking with Michael. ‘So how holy are you, dear twin?’ she
said, with somewhat uncommon sarcasm.
Michael smiled to
himself. What a question. ‘What the hell is that supposed to
mean?’
‘Daniel and Ambriel. They have been bragging. How
about you?’
‘Go ahead,’ said the somewhat perplexed
Archangel Michael.’
‘Ok,’ said Elenniel. ‘Adultery.
How many times?’
‘Oh, about a thousand. About
that.’
‘Really,’ she said, somewhat surprised. ‘A
Thousand? I had suspected something at certain times, but a
thousand.’
‘Hey, that is only once every thousand years,
Elenniel. That is my allotment.’
‘Your allotment?’ she
queried.
‘I’m only human,’ he responded with a smile on
his face.
She nodded to herself, knowingly. ‘Right. Arrests?
How many?’
‘About 50,’ he responded. ‘Usually drunk
and disorderly over the years. Hanging around King David at one of
his parties too much.’
She grinned at that, and
continued.
‘Drunkeness?’
‘A few thousand, I
suppose. Not too much each millennia. Hey, I have an example to
set.’
She nodded. Again, so she was starting to think,
Michael was realistic. It didn’t matter, in the end, if you did
these things a little bit. As long as the average amount was rare.
Nobody complained about him, from her personal
observations.’
‘Right,’ she said. ‘Have you ever
stolen anything?’
‘I pinch lollies from supermarkets once
a century as a joke. Daniel said he did it as a youth a little bit,
so I thought, may as well.’
She smiled. Technically illegal,
but she wouldn’t hassle him.
‘Oh, and as a kid on earth
there were certain things. Certain events, but that is ancient
history, right?’
‘That’s ok,’ she responded. ‘Well,
anything you want to confess?’
‘Only that I love you
Elenniel,’ and he came and sat next to her, kissed her on the
cheek, and all was suddenly well in the world.
* * * *
*
Saruviel looked at Krystabel. ‘What the hell kind
of question is that?’
‘Well, Ariel was talking to
Meludiel, who was talking to Elenniel, and they got the dirt on their
twins. Quite interesting, some of it.’
‘Oh.’ Said
Saruviel. ‘You must illuminate me some time.’
‘And you,
brother?’
Saruviel smiled. ‘Well the Lord of Glory calls
me the Devil for a reason, sweetheart.’
And Krystabel dared
not ask him anything more.
* * * * *
Gabriel
just shook his head, smiled at Aquariel, and said ‘Hey, sweetheart.
I’m a Bongiovi for a reason. And Aquariel didn’t question him
after that.
* * * * *
Ambriel was
jealous. Pissed off at Daniel’s recent victory over him. Time for a
contest. Time for a contest.
He came around to
Danielphon, sitting with Ariel and Daniel, and said to them. ‘Daniel.
I have a wager for you. A real wager. 7 months. In 7 months Ariel has
to make a decision. Between you and me. Which one of us cares the
most. Which one of us shows true and genuine concern.’
‘And
the loser’, smiled Daniel.
‘Dumped in a pile of shit by
the Seraphim,’ responded Ambriel.
‘Fine,’ said
Daniel.
Ariel said ‘That is fine. I will be fair.’
And
Ambriel went of, a happy angel.
* * * * *
Here
they were, the three of them – friends, it seemed. Yes. Friends.
Andrew had been nervous when Jessica had dropped around to the flat
that morning, innocently, seemingly, inviting them to the weekend
fair the city ran. Yes, innocently, Andrew thought to himself
sarcastically. She certainly had an ulterior motive, which he
suspected Bianca knew all to well. But what could they say? How could
they refuse.
‘Those dodgems look fun. Why don’t we
try them?’ suggested Jessica. Bianca looked on disapprovingly. ‘Too
rough for me. No thanks,’ she responded.
Jessica smiled at
her and, slowly, turned to Andrew. She smiled at him, curling her
hair with her fingers. ‘How about you? Are you game?’
Andrew
looked at his girlfriend, who shrugged, and walked over to a bench to
sit down, staring at the two of them.
‘Come on Andy, it’ll
be heaps of fun.’ And with such words, and little protestation, she
dragged her man to the ticket man, bought two tickets, and climbed on
the next round.
As Jessica successfully dodged the
traffic, including some reckless looking fellows, possibly quite
young, who seemed to delight in crashing right into each other
despite the ticketman’s frustrations, she somehow managed to make
sure his hands were always on the wheel, covering hers, being her
man. And she would turn to him, smile at him, and make snappy
comments about her driving. She was obviously having a good time. She
was.
Later on, they were eating fairy floss, watching
the swans swim around on the fair’s central pond, when Jessica
suggested they stay for the evening fireworks. Bianca didn’t seem
to object, but had not really seemed to care anyway. She had been
giving Andrew dirty looks all day, as if somehow the situation was
all his fault, and Andrew knew, somehow, it was. But Jessica
continued with her agenda, with a façade of obliviousness to all
objections, real or imaginary.
And so, sitting next to
him, Bianca on the grandstand row behind them, they watched the
fireworks and Jessica brought up moments of their past when similar
things had happened. She was definitely, definitely, trying to hook
him. Of that he had no doubts.
That night, after
Jessica had left the flat after an evening cocktail, kissing Andrew
on the cheek, Bianca finally sat down next to him, put her arm around
him, kissed him and said ‘Thank God that is over.’
Andrew
was lost for words, but found some anyway. ‘You know, Bianca. You
know, I really do love you. These years together, well…. Well they
have been everything to me.’
Bianca pulled away from him, a
concerned look on her face. ‘Yes. And what is that supposed to
mean, exactly.’
He threw his hands in the air. ‘You know.
You know the situation.’
‘Jessica, you mean,’ she
responded.
He looked at her, frustrated. ‘She won’t go
away. I don’t think I can expect her to, either.’
‘But
the question is, do you want her to?’
He said
nothing.
‘Well,’ she said. ‘Do you want her to? Do
you?’
The question hovered in the air, and as he
turned away, picked up the remote, turning on the TV, he knew he
wouldn’t answer her. After all, what could he really say. What
could he.
* * * * *
Daniel was out the
back of Danielphon, his personal abode named after him in the heart
of Zaphora, the central disc of the Realm of Eternity, pottering
around his work-shed, not doing much in particular. Daniel, in his
many years of long life, had gradually accumulated various technical
skills associated with the workshop, but he was certainly no Surafel
or Kelkuriel in comparison to knowledge and experience in the trades
area. Yet he did like to make certain wooden items occasionally, such
as wooden pen boxes and wooden toolboxes, which he worked carefully
upon to ensure they came out each time as an item of perfection. And
these items, alongside various other items, he would sell in the
shopfront just down at the local mall which he operated, his
occasional daily work, were he sold various items he personally
manufactured himself. He had a number of ‘Ties’ which were his
original creations, he sold a number of his older bestselling books,
various items of jewellery of sorts, and other trinkets of sorts
which he was personally adept at making. This, in many ways, was his
personal trade – his personal business. He did not really know what
the future held – perhaps one day he would be living in a different
place again, away from the realm, living another life. Perhaps he
would have different responsibilities and different duties – who
could really say what destiny held for him. But whatever may be, he
had decided that in the normal type of circumstances he would produce
his own items for economic trade and maintain a shopfront were he
would sell such items. Yet all of them made by hand by
himself.
Certainly, he had enormous savings. You could
expect that in the time of life he had been alive for. But he had
trained himself in the making of various objects which could be sold
for retail for eternity was a long time and a man without a trade,
well, well he wouldn’t want to be one.
He sat there,
that afternoon, tinkering away, working slowly on another pen box
which would be added to his ample supply, thinking on love and life.
Would he win Ambriel’s challenge? Would he? He hoped so, but Ariel
was always difficult to predict – so independent of his own
influence upon her at times while, at times, so seemingly also
dependent. Such a difficult woman to fathom.
It was a
quiet day, nothing much happening, so he ate his cold pizza, which he
always had on weekends, drank his cans of coke, and drifted along
happily enough in the world of Daniel the Seraphim.
*
* * * *
Andrew stood on the top of the tower, looking
out over Canberra 37. There were several thousand ‘Canberra’s’
throughout Canbraphora, but that was not surprising. Canbraphora was
an enormous place after all. There had been nothing specific about
Canberra 37 which had attracted himself and Jessica originally to the
place – it could have been Canberra 112 or Canberra 999 for that
matter. It just ended up being Canberra 37. It was a moderate sized
city – a few billion residents – nothing spectacularly original
in that sense but, in the time Andrew had been here, it had become
home.
There were now clubs he was part of. Archery had
a fascination for him, and he shot arrows every few weeks at a club
not far from his flat. He also played bridge – sometimes he felt
particularly poorly – but he had a realm-wide ranking in the end,
as all registered players did. Bottom 1%, naturally, but he was a
young angel still relatively speaking, and some champions had been
playing the game forever it seemed.
There were other
activities he got up to in his free time from his work
responsibilities. He was ‘Known’ as the son of the Angel Daniel
by many people, a significant thing in a world with the population
the Realm of Eternity had, but he was an angel in Daniel’s list of
offspring well down the ranking, so it was not that big a deal to a
lot of people. Significant, but nothing to lose sleep about. And, so
Andrew believed, that was generally the way he liked it.
In
most respects Andrew had a full life. He had a good girlfriend,
Bianca, someone who he was strongly thinking of marrying, good work,
a good place to live, and enough suitable activities to keep him well
enough amused. There was just one thing in particular which kept him
up at nights of late – his former girlfriend Jessica. What to do
about Jessica. What to do about Jess.
* * * *
*
Jessica drove along in her red Ferrari, checking the
mirror as a car behind her almost snuck right up her rear end before
she had quickly pulled away. It was gone now, but you could never be
too careful. Funny thing – life was fragile in one sense. You
could, theoretically, die in a car accident if your brain was damaged
seriously enough. But that never happened, usually. Somehow God
managed to preserve everyone on the road from such injuries. In fact,
so she had been told, death was an extremely rare thing in the Realm
of Eternity. It happened – rarely though. Were they went when they
died? Sheol. The world of the dead. Apparently, according to some
sources, ideas of resurrection eventually would come around. In fact,
supposedly, the righteous were guaranteed eternal life, and God knew
all the righteous by name. In truth Jessica assumed she was one of
them. That she was righteous enough to be granted eternal life which,
without that, was there any real point anyway? She studied numerous
of the religions o the Realm from time to time, but mostly centred on
the Seraphim Torah as her basic text of study. It was not overly
long, easy to read for herself, and gave her enough ideas that she
personally related to. It was all she really needed.
But,
perhaps, not all she really needed. There was something else –
something in a physical sense, which she also craved. Andrew. Her
former boyfriend Andrew. She couldn’t, now, get him out of her
head. She couldn’t, now, live without him.
Oh, what
would she do. What would she do. Her former boyfriend, no matter what
she tried of late, stayed faithful. And all because she misunderstood
his original intentions towards Bianca. All because she judged him
too harshly. But, no, she wouldn’t give up. She wouldn’t do that.
Somehow, someway, she would get her man. Someway love would find a
way. Someway.
* * * * *
Ambriel came
around – yet again – and with chocolates. Lovely, expensive
chocolates. Very expensive. Ariel bit into one, her whole mouth
filled with flavour, and she nodded to Ambriel. ‘Very yummy, Amby
Wamby.’
‘I’m glad you liked them.’
Just then
Daniel walked in, looked at Ambriel and Ariel and the chocolates,
smiled to himself, and walked back out.
‘Don’t worry. He’s
just jealous,’ said Ariel. Ambriel hoped so.
* * * *
*
‘Blaze. Blaze Dagger. That’s my name.’
‘So
were do you come from, friend?’
Blaze Bongiovi looked at his
prospective employer – a human, on a far flung world of the
American West, way out in the spiritual heavenlies planets of
mankind.
‘A place far away. A place I’d rather
forget.’
The man looked at the wings. ‘Angel, huh?’
‘You
got it in one,’ responded Blaze.
‘Well, we aint got
anything against angels. They’re perfectly welcome our way. Sure,
the farmstead will take you on. We could always use another worker,
especially these days when the harvests seem to be getting better all
the time. Consider yourself hired.’
The man put forth his
hand and Blaze shook it. He was home, now, he guessed. Home, on a far
away planet, in a far away world. But, of that fateful decision, well
he had no choice now. No choice at all.
* * * *
*
Metatron examined the move his eternal theophanic
father had made in their game of chess. It was a good one, now, in
hindsight. He had thought about it for a while when it was God’s
turn to move, but dismissed the idea that God would move in that way.
But he had, and now he saw some of the depth in the decision. It
offered him other avenues of attack, potentially, as the game
progressed. All from one move. A cunning father he was
playing.
They’d had more games then he could poke a
stick at, now. And even the old scoreboard out back still stood firm,
filled with all its original strokes of mostly victories to God.
Metatron laughed about that these days.
Metatron, now,
had a twin. Angela. Angela of Paradise – chief angel over Islam.
She liked him, and when she came around, they usually slept together.
But she would not marry him. Marriage was to simple for the likes of
Angela – she was a queen of glory and needed no trivial bonds to
keep her enslaved. Such were he words of wisdom to himself.
They
had no children. She could not bare any, or so she claimed. He
queried his father on that once and he replied ‘Oh, she can have
them all right.’ He had asked why they had not had any yet and God
had said ‘Such are the mysteries of a woman’s heart.’ And that
had been that.
Technically, as the firstborn child of
God of all realms of glory, Metatron had enormous potential power
available to him. He could be a King of Glory, if he so chose, but he
didn’t. He didn’t want that. He didn’t care for that. The
simple life, living at home with his father, and Logos and Memra when
they came around, and the occasional visitor that God allowed –
that was all Metatron really needed out of life. That was all he
wanted.
Sure, he occasionally went on holidays, to see
all of God’s grand creations. And, really, it was. A grand
creation. But no matter were he travelled, no matter how far he
journeyed, or where his adventures took him, in the end there was no
place like home. As simple as that – no place like home.
He
took a sip of his drink, looked at the chess board and said to
himself, ‘Now how am I going to get out of this tricky one.’
*
* * * *
‘Gabriel does NOT smoke dope, Satan.’
‘He
doesn’t,’ responded the Lord of the Dark to Archangel
Michael.
Michael stopped, and looked at his adversary. ‘Uh,
no. No. He, uh, doesn’t.’
‘I wouldn’t be so sure about
that, Mikey boy. Go ask him. Ask him yourself.’
And the lord
of the dark, whistling ‘Enter Sandman’ disappeared down the
corridor of Kalphon keep, leaving a very disturbed Archangel Michael
wondering.
4 days later he was back at Zaphon, had
snuck into the overseer’s office with Gabriel away at the moment,
and Cindradel winking at him, searching around. And then he found it
– in the bottom draw of the executive desk – a small parcel of
marijuana with some cigarette paper.
‘Fuck,’ he swore to
himself. What was his brother up to.
Cindradel, when
he was leaving, motioned to him to come and sit close.
‘Did
you find the, you know. The stuff.’
Michael looked at her
strictly. ‘So its not even a secret?’
‘Oh, relax
Michael. Its not the end of the world. He smokes a joint every few
months. He has done so for a while. Says you were way to strict in
your time as overseer, and people need to relax a little.’
‘Oh,’
said Michael. ‘Oh.’
Later on that day, sitting
next to Elenniel on a couch, he was still saying ‘Oh.’ He had
been to strict. Too strict. Archangel Michael had been to strict.
‘Oh.’
Chapter
Nine
‘Don’t talk to strangers.’
‘Why
not Ron?’
‘Cause there only there to do you harm.’
‘Oh,
Lord of the Elves. They are only there to do me harm?’
‘Yes,
Miss Cheryl Colson. They are only there to do you harm?’
‘Any
other advice, Oh Lord of Wisdom?’
‘Yeh. Do another
Supergirl’s CD.’
Cheryl smiled. That was Ronnie. Always
with something funny to say. But she did love him for it.
She
sat in the club, a very expensive club, in Terraphora, were a few
others of the legends were also currently found. Mel Gibson was over
in the corner, chatting to a few ladies. Leonardo DiCaprio was not
far from him, seated at a piano, tinkering away to impress a young
maiden who had been hanging over him all evening, and Angelina Jolie
was sipping on a gin, looking out over the city of Terraphona,
thinking over who knows what. And she herself was currently being
entertained by the illustrious Ronnie James Dio, heavy metal singer
with a voice she was terribly jealous of.
‘So, do
you have any suggestions for new material?’ she queried him.
‘Oh,
the infinite universe always has something new to offer. Sure, we
have all covered a lot of material the last million years, but there
is stuff which still beckons. I am sure of it.’
‘We have a
perfect number, though, dear Ron. 12,345 Albums. A perfect place to
end it. Were could we possibly go from there? We did promise the fans
that was the last of it.’
‘Go for 21,000. That is my
suggestion, Miss Colson. You have a lot of room for a lot more live
albums in that as well. People do enjoy the live stuff as well after
a while.’
She nodded. That much was a valid point these
days.
‘Maybe. I’ll think it over,’ she responded.
‘Do
that,’ responded the Lord of the Metal World.
* * *
* *
Jessica sat in the hill, at the edge of Canberra
37, looking out at the night sky. The city below her beamed its
lights brightly. It beamed them and, despite the malaise of her
heart, comforted her. It was still good to be alive.
She
had a CD Walkman with her. She picked out a CD from her small CD
holder next to her – Dio The Collection – and fast forwarded it
to track 10 – Rock ‘N’ Roll Children.
That was
her and Andrew - Rock and Roll Children. Paper and Fire. The Devil of
one another.
The problem was Bianca. And that was the
problem – she was a nice girl. Andrew now loved her. And Jessica
thought she was lovely as well. It was the problem – she was
lovely, and Andrew had been with her for the last decade and a bit.
He would not budge easily, if he ever would. Knowing Andrew, it
wouldn’t be likely.
If she wanted her man, Jessica
would have to do something sincere about it. She would have to pray.
She would have to pray a lot. She would have to pray to God, pour out
her heart, and let him know her love for Andy. And that, eternally,
she would commit to this one. That she would be a faithful, loving
and devoted wife. That she would be a constant support. That she
would be there.
Somehow, in her heart of hearts, she
knew she would come through in the end. That, at the day of choosing,
Andrew would look at her and nod. Somehow she knew that. But it would
be a trial. A Struggle. And Bianca would not crack easily. She would
have to be persistent, determined and faithful. It was the only way
she would get her man. But she had made up her mind. Andrew was hers.
Of that she had no doubts whatsoever.
* * * *
*
‘Every rose has its thorn, Yesh. Every rose has
its thorn.’
‘What is that supposed to men, oh venerable
King David.’
‘The beauty of this church you have formed
for yourself. Inevitably there are thorns which will thwart your
ambitions.’
‘And what are they?’
‘Competitors.
Even from within. Stealing your glory.’
‘They know who
runs the show.’
‘Do they? Do they?’
‘Yes, King
David. They do.’
‘Mmm. I read your New Testament,
recently. Took a good look at it. Working out what you were saying
about a newer model. An, apparently, better model. All I can say is
‘What’s New about it?’
Jesus looked at him, and
thought it over. ‘New birth, new life. Away from old dead legalism.
Alive to the spirit, and were God wants to lead us as
individuals.’
‘Yet you give your own list of rules for
Christians as well.’
‘Yes,’ responded Jesus, and said
nothing more.
David sipped on his latte, and looked at
his opponent. ‘Blessed are the merciful? The torah teaches that all
the time. In fact, go through half your gospel and you find it in
torah anyway. The New Testament quotes the hell out of it. No,
forgive me. MISQUOTES the hell out of it.’
‘We take the
spiritual meaning of the old testament text. The truths hidden within
it which come to light in the Christian faith.’
‘Really?’
said David. ‘Or perhaps vain attempts to justify yourselves when at
odds with God’s truth.’
Jesus said nothing.
David
took another sip on his latte. ‘Whatever else, it was an
interesting enough read, but certainly not converting material.
Apparently Paul expected all Israel to convert. It never
happened.’
‘Not yet,’ said Jesus. ‘You will see the
light eventually.’
‘Apparently,’ said David.
‘Apparently.’
‘Yes,’ finished Jesus.
*
* * * *
‘Too strict. I am bloody too strict,
Raphael. Go figure, huh.’
Raphael, sitting opposite Michael
in a lower Zaphon tower canteen, smiled, placed his hand on Michael’s
and said ‘Cheer up, Mikey. You were firstborn. We all didn’t mind
that much. God wanted – NEEDED to establish a sense of propriety
and order. That protocols, in the end, would be honoured if
necessary. Believe me, after Gabriel, things will slacken off even
more so. No, we won’t be going lawless, but it will be a lot more
relaxed an environment.’
Michael looked at him, picked up a
chip, dipped it in gravy, ate it and said ‘Well why the hell didn’t
somebody say something to me? Is this Uriel’s attitude? Raguel’s?
Phanuel’s? God forbid, I should already realize what Saruviel might
dish up.’
‘Most of us, really,’ responded Raphael.
‘Daniel and Ambriel intend to ensure a degree of order is
maintained, but have promised us all they won’t be too legalistic
either. Remember, mercy triumphs over judgement.’
‘I see,’
said Michael. ‘Thank God for Daniel and Ambriel then is all I
say.’
‘Yes,’ said Raphael with soothing words. ‘Thank
God for Daniel and Ambriel.’
* * * * *
‘This
is the first day of the rest of your life, Lord Gabriel.’
‘Lord
Gabriel, Daniel? Are you trying to trick me into something?’
Daniel
smiled. The architect of the prophecies of Daniel said ‘Now would I
do that?’
‘Mmm,’ was Gabriel’s response.
The
two of them were drinking some beer in Zaphon, in a canteen, having
said hello to Michael and Raphael as they had just left. Daniel
rarely drank beer, but Gabriel was in the mood for a drop.
‘So,
what should I do with the rest of the days of eternity?’ queried
Gabriel, with a smile on his face.
‘Live life to the
fullest. Eat, drink and be merry. Chase your dreams. Chase your
rainbows. Be a god of glory.’
‘A god of glory, huh. Well
the band is doing moderately well. I guess I am becoming a god of
glory.’
‘Exactly,’ said Daniel. ‘Live the dream. I
always do.’
‘You do?’ queried Gabriel, again a smirk on
his face.
‘Oh, naturally. Not a day goes by when there is
not some little agenda of Daniel the Seraphim which I am
pursuing.’
‘Now that I believe,’ said Gabriel, drinking
his beer. ‘Oh, and how is Ambriel? I have heard of a certain wager
between the two of you. You better be careful. If anything else,
Ambriel certainly is an angel of love. Your devotions to Ariel had
best be quite sincere.’
‘Mmm,’ said Daniel. ‘Yes.
Probably. I’ll let that take care of itself, though. Put my trust
in Ariel.’
‘You do that,’ said Gabriel, a smile on his
face.
And they drank their beer, and chatted about
this and that, and all was well in the world.
* * * *
*
Ruth was driving, alone, along a dirt road, to a
friend. A friend she was concerned about. A lady she had met a long
time ago, who had wanted to convert to Judaism, but who had always
had questions, and objections. Questions about wether God really
wanted her to be Jewish, which Ruth insisted had always had to be her
own choice anyway, as Noahide faith was always suitable otherwise.
But now the woman, having contacted Ruth recently, was ready. Ready
to embrace the people of the book.
She lived not far
from Paradision, out of town, along a dirt road on a lonely looking
property. Ruth was not sure how the lady, Margaret, maintained her
income, as she was not married, but presumably she had investments of
sorts, as the farm did not seem to be being used much, if at
all.
She arrived at the farmstead, parked and looked
around. It was a nice looking place. There were crops of corn nearby,
but they didn’t look as if they were harvested regularly. There was
a barn, which had hay, but not much else, apart from the homestead.
She came to the front door, knocked, and waited. Nothing. 5 minutes
and no response.
Looking around she walked around to
the back and found her lady, sitting in a rocking chair, earphones
on, eyes closed. ‘Margie?’ she spoke up, and suddenly the ladies
eyes opened, looked at Ruth, and smiled.
* * * *
*
‘So that is why I am ready, Ruthie. I have been
refused 3 times by your synagogue, which is almost mandatory, but I
have done my time. I think the Torah is memorised in my mind – I
have tested myself many times, and my Kosher routine and Sabbath
observance is as perfect as I can make it. I am ready, Ruthie. Will
you speak for me?’
Ruthie hugged Margaret and nodded. ‘Of
course. You are far readier than I ever was. I think our Rabbi will
accept you now.’
‘Good,’ responded Margaret
Johnson.
They spent the rest of the day looking around
the farm. Indeed, Margaret’s money came from investments in shares
she had purchased a long time ago when she had been married to the
man who also lived on the farm with her. They had eventually divorced
and he had drifted away, but they had worked the farm for a long
time, bought expensive shares in a newer company, and had hoped for
the best. They had been very lucky – the firm had lasted.
Since
then the farm had fallen into disuse and Margaret came to town every
week or so for supplies, but mostly lived out here, listening to her
music, watching some TV, reading books and, for the most part,
studying Torah. She had been devoted to it for a long time
now.
‘You probably know what the Rabbi will ask you.
Your faithfulness, and so on. You are probably already aware of that,
aren’t you Margie.’
‘As ready as I can make myself,
Ruth. As ready as I can be.’
Ruth nodded.
As
they walked around the farm, and retired for dinner, Ruth stayed the
night and they stayed up late, chatting about this and that, talking
some Torah issues, and being happy and at peace with each
other.
Margaret was a quiet blessing to Ruth and, in
the morning, as she left for home, she was hopeful of a positive
response from the rabbi and a welcoming into her community.
*
* * * *
Cheryl Colson was, again, in the same bar,
late on sabbath night, looking out over the brightly lit city, in a
world of her own. Ronnie James Dio was playing a soothing piano
melody, very haunting in many ways, but soothing none the less and
Cheryl was by the window, gazing over the city, sipping on a brandy
with ice, Nathan Yeltsin, her boyfriend, sitting opposite her. They
had stopped chatting a few minutes ago and were just enjoying the
sights. He looked at her from time to time, though, and she noticed
him looking, but said nothing. They were in love. In love. In deep
love.
But something wasn’t right. A name was
haunting her – from a dream. The name William. Somehow she couldn’t
get the name out of her head, for it had been the name of destiny. Of
course, she already knew an Adam – one who she sang to holding on
forever to and never letting go. But she had done that, in the end,
let go of him, and the Black Eyed Peas toured out in humanity’s
paradise of planets most of the time, never bothering with the
angelic realms. Was Mr Adams her love? The love of her life? She
wasn’t sure. Certainly they had partied together a lot in the
earlier years, but then drifted apart. And now she wasn’t even sure
if she loved William in that kind of way. Wether he could fill her
heart with the kind of love of eternity. Wether it was him.
Of
course, Nathan was her man at the moment, and she was sure that
Nathan WOULD be loyal. She sensed that in him and, somehow, the angel
must have gotten it wrong. Mustn’t he?
She looked at
him, took a sip of brandy, enjoyed the burning sensation in her
throat, and said ‘Do you love me Nathan?’
‘More than
life itself,’ he responded, and she knew he meant it. She nodded,
softly, and returned her gaze to the city. At least Nathan was here –
not a mysterious William.
It got late, they found a
hotel in Zaphon to book into, and they slept the night in separate
beds. But she dreamed again, and the angel was before her.
‘So
you chose William,’ he said to her.
‘Yes,’ she
nodded.
‘And you will never leave him?’
‘But who
is he?’ she asked, confused.
‘No. No you haven’t met him
yet. You don’t even know who he is yet. But it looks as if he will
be the eternal love of your life. I wish you good luck on your
destiny, fair maiden. And, in the end, I feel you have chosen well.
You have chosen your heart.’
‘But who is he?’ she asked,
but the angel had already disappeared, and she was left alone, full
of questions, full of wonder.
* * * * *
‘Margaret
passed,’ said Boaz, giving the good news to Ruth.
‘Oh,
blessed be Hashem. That is wonderful news.’
‘She has a
number of things to go through, but the Rabbi has accepted her
claims. She will be going through the formal conversion process now,
which will likely be no problem for her with her knowledge and
experience, but within a few years she will be able to attend
synagogue on a regular basis with us.’
‘That is wonderful
new, Boaz. Wonderful.
All that day Ruth was in a good
mood. When she went out walking with Dominic in the hills near her
home. Margaret was on her mind and the ways of the Almighty. Of
course, on Televon, conversion to Judaism was never easy to obtain.
Long, long ago there had been a consensus amongst the Rabbinate that
their Jewish community was full enough and that, reality being the
judge, they did not need converts. So the only way they would admit
someone to their community was if that person had a firm inner
conviction that they belonged with the Jewish people and that the way
of holy Torah was suitable for them. Practically a calling from God
himself was required. And while Margaret had never claimed to have a
specific calling to join the Jewish people, she certainly had long
identified with the Torah way of life which made her an ideal
candidate.
In Ruth’s heart she felt, one day, nearly
all Televon would be Jewish. That it would end up being a Jewish
community. There were of course many Noahides on Televon as well, as
well as Unitarian Christians who had good relations and attitudes
towards the Jewish people. It seemed, to Ruth’s heart, that these
people were the people who were going to eventually join the house of
Israel anyway – that such was their destiny.
Of
course, living next door to them from time to time was Daniel Daly –
the angel Callodyn – and Ruth had never given up hope and prayers
for his eventual conversion. But on that issue, well only time would
tell of the heart of Mr Daly.
* * * * *
Abraham
took another sip of beer. He no longer drank that much of the stuff,
such had been Sarah’s convictions that they set a good example in
the company of others, but for this occasion he would make an
exception. It was his son, Janicus’, birthday. His latest son had
turned 1, and some of the family were present to
celebrate.
‘Janicus is such an unusual name,’
commented the prophet Isaiah. ‘Were did it come from?’
‘It
is old Roman,’ responded Abraham. ‘I liked the sound of it.
Thought it would be suitable. It is original for a son of mine,
anyway.’
‘Right,’ responded the prophet, taking a sip
also of the Russian beer they were drinking.
Janicus
was in the arms of Sarah, who was surrounded by other Israelite
women, doting over him. The men were gathered around Abraham.
‘So,
will he be an honourable warrior for Rome? He won’t convert to
Roman Catholicism, will he?’ chuckled Isaiah.
‘God
forbid,’ responded Abraham. ‘A son of mine? A Roman Catholic?
What in the world would happen next.’
‘You never know,’
responded Isaiah. ‘Yeshua still has a go at us. Never satisfied,
that one. No matter how many converts he has. Never
satisfied.’
‘He’ll learn one day. I hear King David is
sorting him out. The lad will get the point eventually.’
‘Perhaps,’
said Isaiah. ‘But I wouldn’t count on it happening any time
soon.’
‘No,’ responded Abraham, in sober
agreement.
Sarah stood and they were ready for the
cutting of the cake. They sang ‘Happy Birthday,’ which Abraham
had adopted occasionally for the sake of getting along with the
larger community, Sarah held Janicus in front of the cake while she
blew out the candle.
Another son for Abraham. Time
would tell of this ones destiny.
* * * * *
‘You,
shook me all night looonng.’
Cheryl watched on as the
janitor for her apartment sang away with his headphones on, taking
her trash. He was new, by the looks of it. Blonde, good looking. He
looked ideal. Of course, she was forgetting she was with Nathan.
Silly her.
‘What’s your name?’ she queried
him.
‘Huh,’ he said, taking off his earphones.
‘I
said what is your name?’
‘Oh. Right. Bill. Bill
Smith.’
‘So are you new?’
‘Not really. I have
been with the company for a while, but the guy who does this shift
has moved on. I will be taking care of the flats from now
on.’
‘Right,’ she said.
‘Should you be outside
dressed like… Well, undressed almost?’ he queried. Cheryl had
wandered out to the back of the flats, having spied Bill through the
back kitchen window, and forgotten she was quite skimpily
dressed.
‘Oh, fuck,’ she said. ‘Well, you have seen me
now.’
‘I know you don’t I?’ he said.
‘Possibly.
A lot of people recognize me. I am with the Supergirl’s. We’re a
band.’
‘Yeh, that’s it. My little sister had your
posters up everywhere. Uh, your Cheryl, aren’t you?’
‘That’s
it,’ she responded, offering him her hand, which he shook. ‘Well,
good to meet you, Bill Smith.’
‘Yeh, good to meet you,’
he responded. She smiled, and walking back to her open back door she
looked at him as he put back on his earphones and went back to work.
He was cute, after all. Very cute.
* * * * *
‘Oh,
Ambriel. The flowers are lovely. But really, you shouldn’t
have.’
Ariel smelled the flowers and, just then, Daniel
walked by, looked at Ambriel with his flowers for Ariel, almost
smirked, but said nothing.
‘They come from a devoted heart,
Ariel. A TRULY devoted heart. Perhaps others would give you flowers,
if they possibly cared as much. Daniel, who was now sitting at the
desk, rolled his eyes. Oh brother, was it coming on thick.
‘And
I have this for you,’ said Ambriel, producing two tickets. ‘Phantom
of the Opera, with Michael Crawford himself.’
‘Oh, Amby
Wamby,’ she said, hugging him. ‘You are so thoughtful.’
Ariel
turned to Daniel. ‘He IS so thoughtful, isn’t he Daniel?’
‘I
guess,’ responded the 45th of the Seraphim.
‘Unlike some,’
mumbled Ambriel under his breath.
‘When are we
going?’ queried Ariel.
‘Tomorrow night. I will pick you up
in a stretch limousine. Dinner beforehand, at the finest and most
expensive restaurant in Zaphon Tower, and then the show. And we can
go to a lovely bar afterwards, and have a nightcap.’
‘Oh,
Amby Wamby,’ she said, kissing him on the cheek. ‘Isn’t he
wonderful Daniel?’
But Daniel said nothing.
Later
on, figuring that perhaps he possibly should be concerned, Daniel
still had it in mind not to worry. His twin wouldn’t let him down
after all, would she? Could she? No. No way in earth. Was there?
*
* * * *
Noah looked at the last of the cattle as they
were herded into the next paddock were fresh grass was waiting for
them to feed on. He signalled to the herder that all the cattle were
through and they closed the gate. Patrick came over, his right hand
man at ‘Rainbow Valley’ and said ‘Well that’s about it. We’re
finished for the day, right? I sort of need to get away.’
‘Go
on Pat. Good work today. We got a lot done.’
Pat got on
board his motorbike, took off, leaving Noah sitting on his horse,
Rudolph.
‘Come on Rudy. Let’s go home.’
Back
at the ranch, Titea, his wife, welcomed him home, took off his shoes,
and with a warm towel rubbed his feet.
‘That’s better,
love,’ he said. ‘Thanks so much.’
‘It’s my
pleasure,’ his devoted wife responded. ‘So, how are we doing? The
Cattle? Business in general?’
‘You don’t normally
inquire,’ he responded, sipping on some juice. ‘Why the
interest?’
‘Oh. You know. Sometimes I wonder about what we
are doing here in Rainbow Valley. Wether it is the best for
us.’
‘Canbraphora suits me now,’ responded Noah. ‘Even
though we could probably move further in if we had to, as I am sure
we would be approved of, I like this part of the world. It is most
unusual for Canbraphora, this area. More like America in some ways,
but still usually distinctively Australian.’
‘Its why we
are here, isn’t it? Because of the spirit of the place.’
‘Pretty
much, Titea. The ranch is the best place for our family to be. To
call home. We are not far from Cooma 88, and this place feels
comfortable to me. It feels like… I don’t know how to say it, but
I guess it feels like my home. It feels like this is my place of
eternal rest. That I’m a farmer, and this place is were I belong.
Were I will be happiest over the odyssey before us.’
‘Right,’
she nodded. ‘I am not sure, though, if I feel the same way.
Certainly, I want to live her forever as well. But just that… As
well. There are lots of places I want to reside.’
‘And we
will,’ responded Noah. ‘I don’t mind getting about from time to
time. Even Rainbow Valley can get claustrophobic if I am here too
long. But, of all the places that I have been, I feel the most at
home here. As if I belong here.’
‘And that is fine with
me. I like it too. I probably always will. But I need other places as
well. Like Televon. I need to be there, with my family, from time to
time.’
‘I understand,’ he said, consoling her. He looked
over to the kitchen. ‘What is for dinner?’
‘Oh,’ she
responded. ‘You are going to hate me. I ordered pizza from Cooma.
It should be here in about half an hour. 4 of them, various types. We
only have it rarely, but I like it a lot.’
‘That’s fine.
Pizza suits my diet as well.’
‘Good. Now go get changed
and have a shower.’
He trooped off, happy enough that the
pizza would be here when he had washed, and gave some thought to
Titea’s words. She was a restless soul – in some ways she always
had been. And while he was sure that Rainbow Valley was indeed their
main resting place for eternity, there still seemed to be something
in the heart of Titea which desired more. But what that was……
Well only time would tell.
* * * * *
‘So,
Bill. Are you married? Have a girlfriend? You don’t have a
boyfriend, do you?’
Bill Smith laughed. ‘No. No boyfriend.
Not yet anyway,’ he said with a devious grin.
She laughed at
that.
‘So, Billy. What are your ambitions? Do you have
dreams?’
‘Look, you can call me William if you like. That
is my proper first name.’
‘Oh, ok. William. Do you have
any dreams master William?’
‘Oh, you know. The usual run
of the mill stuff. Earn a trillion, invest in shares, retire for
eternity.’
‘Yes, I know. The standard plan of many. It is
just those blue chip shares are just so damn expensive, even just
one, and they keep on rising.’
‘Tell me about it,’ he
responded. ‘But, yeh. Probably blue chip shares eventually, after I
have my place paid off, which will take a while.’
‘So you
will be a working man for some time to come, I take it.’
‘I
guess so.’
‘I like a working man. Honest. Hard working.
Good character.’
‘Why thank you, fair maiden,’ he
responded.
The two of them were on her back verandah,
sipping on ice tea which she had brought out for him in his break.
She was flirting. She had a boyfriend in Nathan, but she knew she was
flirting. But she couldn’t help herself – he was incredibly cute,
after all, and a girl had only so much resistance power to a cute
guy.
‘So, uh, do you wanna go out some time,’ he
blurted out.
She smiled. ‘Well, actually, I do have a
boyfriend at the moment, but it was nice of you to ask
anyway.’
‘Sure,’ he said, a little disappointed. ‘Well,
thanks again for the ice tea. It’s refreshing.’
‘You’re
welcome,’ she responded.
When Bill got back to work
she watched him for a few moments and then lifted the tray of ice tea
and, as she was about to go inside she thought on his real first
name. William, huh. A nice name. But, hang on a sec. That was
familiar. And then, suddenly, she knew why the name was on her mind.
It was the name from her dream – the name the angel had spoken
about. She looked at the man and said ‘You aren’t serious are
you?’ to nobody in particular, and that entire day master William
was on her mind.
* * * * *
‘Oh,
Daniel. Come and look. The limo is here. Its all gold and gold
trimmed.’
Daniel, sitting over at the PC, was happy enough
to see Ariel dressed up, as she was good to look at, but it was for
another man tonight. Perhaps he should be jealous, but there were
unwritten rules in this contest, and so far Ambriel was playing by
them. A knock came to the door and Ariel opened it to find Ambriel,
dressed to the hilt, again with some flowers. ‘For you fair
maiden,’ he said kneeling, and Ariel took the flowers and was
overjoyed.
‘Ok, we are going now, Danny,’ said
Ariel.
‘Stay out as long as you like,’ he responded, not
lifting his eyes from the screen.
‘Yes,’ said Ariel,
staring at him. ‘Like you care,’ she mumbled under her breath.
And then they were off.
Despite himself, sitting at
his PC, Daniel knew now, perhaps, just perhaps, he should start doing
something about their little wager. He really didn’t fancy getting
tossed into a pile of shit, which had already been ordered by
Ambriel, to be placed in a skip in a nearby park paddock to
Danielphon, with special arrangement from the council. But Ariel
wouldn’t betray him, would she? She couldn’t? They were twins?
Sure, she would enjoy Ambriel’s attention and his flatteries, but
she would choose Daniel in the end by way of course. She couldn’t
choose anyone but him. Could she? No, he needn’t worry. Don’t
bother, anyway. If it was a contest, Ambriel was off to a winning
lead and Daniel couldn’t hope to catch up by now. He would have to
instead rely on her long term loyalty to him and the twin factor.
Surely that would triumph in the end. Surely.
* * * *
*
Callodyn was sitting with Daniel in Danielphon.
Ariel and Ambriel were still out and it was getting late, or early,
depending on your perspective.
‘Look, Dan,’ said Callodyn.
‘I don’t think you will have to worry, bro. Don’t sweat it. I
mean, in the end, it is only shit. Big deal. Laugh it off if she
chooses Ambriel. It will be a learning experience in that sense. But,
I am sure she will choose you.’
‘Perhaps I should buy her
some chocolates. Expensive ones.’
‘Like you said,’
responded Callodyn. ‘Ambriel is a keen competitor when it comes
right down to it. It is that love spirit he has going for him. The
girls really dig it when they are around him. Just be yourself, bro.
Just be yourself. In the end, even this battle is not that important.
You are who you are, and that is what Ariel likes about you in the
end anyway. Life goes on, as they say. Life goes on.’
‘Even
after being dumped in a pile of shit!’ responded Daniel, and
Callodyn laughed.
Chapter
Ten
‘Don’t talk to strangers.’
‘Why not
Ron?’
‘Cause there only there to do you harm.’
She
smiled this time. ‘Very good, Ronnie. You are terribly
consistent.’
‘I like to think so,’ responded the Lord of
Heavy Metal.
Cheryl and Nathan were again in the bar
in Zaphon tower which had become a haunt for Cheryl as of late. She
was spending a lot of money coming to Zaphon tower regularly at the
moment, visiting from her home in Terraphora, but such had been her
long term dream. To live in Zaphora, in Zaphona city of possible, and
Zaphon Tower was the height of the glory she sought – the central
pinnacle of the Realm of Eternity – the pinnacle of the Realm’s
glory – and what would always be, ever increasingly so, the centre
of wealth and star status. She couldn’t yet quite afford a place in
Zaphon tower, not quite yet, and while in the last decade she had
about amassed enough wealth to afford Zaphona city, she was waiting.
Waiting for an opening her in Zaphon itself, to find her eternal
abode. But, now, with the CD collection still doing so well and sales
continuing to grow with new population in the outer reaches, coupled
with the fact she recently appeared on one of the Pay TV music
stations for an acoustic live performance, which had given a marked
increase in sales, which she’d figured it would, sales had
increased markedly at the moment, and with her current increase in
royalties she could afford, while still saving at the same time, to
live in hotels in Zaphon tower on a regular basis. So there she would
live, keep her flat in Terraphora under wraps for now, but plan on
making the move to Zaphon tower once finances permitted. And then she
would rest, her eternal abode chosen, and live on her royalties. If
they ever needed to tour again, which she doubted greatly, she would.
But unless that was the case she generally preferred a quiet life,
hidden in the shadows, reclusive, living in the heart of the world,
the pinnacle of glory, but with a small community she could trust.
Ronnie lived here now. He had saved his royalties, also, for a long
time, and eventually gotten a humungous loan which, he claimed,
probably had another million years to go, even with increased
royalties, before he was out of debt. But he had taken the gamble,
and gone for the centre when he had been approved of. It was the
place to be in his own words. Of course, the tower, so the critics
said, would have to eventually be rebuilt, but it was made of a
substance designed by the Theophany of God and his son Metatron for
the most part, and apparently would last a number of millions of
years with the standard weather patterns before there would be any
problems and need for being rebuilt. Essentially, it was a long-life
lasting as possible, and while the residents would have to find
alternative locations during the rebuild, which would take around 10
to 20 thousand years or thereabouts, as the job had to be done
professionally and carefully and, after all, went up practically
forever, it was still the most wonderful place in the universe,
according to some, to live. And so Cheryl had chosen Zaphon for her
home, and would never relent of it. But a man to share it with.
Nathan Yeltsin? Fellow Ketravim? Who knew. Who knew.
‘What
are you thinking of Cheryl?’ queried Nathan, sipping on a glass of
wine.
‘Oh, nothing much,’ she said. They were seated
nearby the piano were Ronnie was tinkering away, perhaps working on
some tunes for a new Dio album, or perhaps just having some
fun.
‘Come on. Something must be on your thoughts. Perhaps
my proposal?’
‘Yes. Naturally. I have given that some
thought.’
‘But you don’t have an answer for me
yet.’
She looked at him, smiled, but shook her head
slightly. No answer to his marriage proposal yet. Not yet.
‘Play
us a song, Ronnie. Something interesting.’
‘Will do,
sweetcheeks,’ he responded, and started on an old Black Sabbath
tune from his time with the band.
As he played, she
disappeared into the music, gazed out over the dark night at all the
lights of Zaphona city, and was happy. Just, simply, happy.
*
* * * *
‘Good shot. A hard one from this
distance.’
‘Thanks,’ responded Andrew. He had hit the
centre of the target from the maximum range of this club, a very
challenging feat. He probably fluked it, but he had been at Archery
for a while now. He was getting a bit better at it.
‘I’ll
have to respond,’ said Joel Hennessy. He took aim, let the arrow
fly, and it hit the very outer ring.
‘I guess I win,’ said
Andrew.
‘This round, yes. Perhaps we should have a wager
sometime.’
‘Maybe another time. Thanks Joel. See you next
week.’
Andrew returned the bow to the hiring vendor, and
walked over to the bar and ordered a beer. He could always bring his
own bow, naturally, but he hired them mostly to keep his particular
beauty for special occasions. His shooting partner, Joel Hennessy,
had been shooting together with Andrew for a number of years now, not
long after they had joined the club. They were both relatively
newbies at the thing, but had both gradually been improving. And it
was a lot of fun.
He sat there, sipping on his beer,
happy enough with things, when he spied her. Jessica. Sitting in the
club, sitting at an empty table, sipping on a drink. What was SHE
doing here? He picked up his beer, wandered over, and looked at
her.
‘Andrew!’ she exclaimed. ‘What are you doing
here?’
‘I was about to ask you that question,’ he
responded. ‘Kind of funny place to come for a drink, don’t you
think?’
‘Oh, I have a friend who comes here,’ she
responded. ‘She just left, but I thought I would stay a
while.’
‘Really?’ he queried. But she was indeed lying.
She had been following him since that morning.
‘Well, I
guess no real harm then.’
‘Why don’t you sit,’ she
offered him.
‘He looked at her, knew he really should be
suspicious, but it was Jess. It was Jess.
He sat down,
took a sip on his beer, and looked at her outfit. It was black
tights, short at the knees, a black top which hugged her and
accentuated her curves, which looked good, and some necklaces. She
looked, for want of a better word, hot.
‘You look
good,’ he responded. ‘Dressed up for your friend, and all.’
She
looked at him and decided honesty would be the best policy. ‘Ok.
There was NO friend. I followed you this morning, and came here after
you.’
‘Why doesn’t that surprise me,’ he said, sipping
on his beer.
‘I just. Well. I just wanted to be with you,
ok. I don’t apologize for that.’
‘No,’ he said. ‘I
guess you wouldn’t.’
‘No,’ she agreed.
They
sat there for a while, neither speaking, but he did look her over.
And suddenly, quite aware of her feminine beauty, he realized one of
the core reasons he had been attracted to her all along anyway.
‘You
do look good,’ he said.
‘Thanks,’ she said,
smiling.
They chatted away for a while and when she
asked him if he would like to come over for dinner he really did
almost say yes. Almost.
But he left her at the bar,
got to his car, looked in through the window at her sitting there and
almost, almost, went back inside. But he steeled himself, got into
his car, and drove off. This was not the time to be messing around
with Jessica. This was not the time.
* * * * *
‘So
where else do you want to live? What is wrong with Rainbow
Valley?’
‘Huh,’ responded Titea to Noah’s
question.
‘You said you wanted to live elsewhere.’
‘Oh,
that. Yes. I guess. Oh, I don’t know, Noah. Maybe it was just my
heart talking off the cuff. Really, I am happy with you wherever you
call home. I am yours forever darling.’
‘Right,’ he
said, and eyed her.
Later on, around 11, she was in
the living room, working on a jigsaw and he came in. ‘Ok. The name
of the place is Zanadra. It is a planet amongst the Andorran
community of mankind. It is a new one, quite sparsely populated at
the moment, but very, very beautiful from all reports. Like Andorra
in many ways on earth. Here are the photos.’ He handed her a
catalogue which he had had mailed to him a few months earlier, and
she took it, looking it over.
‘Oh, its lovely. Adorable.’
She spent a while going over the catalogue and Noah could sense, with
the growing approval on her face, she had found her home.
‘We
will move there, then,’ he finished. ‘Rainbow Valley can be a
home away from home, but Zanadra will do as our final location. Are
you satisfied with that?’
‘Oh, yes, Noah. It looks
wonderful,’ and she came over, hugged him, and continued looking
over the catalogue.
One final destination, he thought
to himself that night. He had honestly thought he had found home, but
one last place. One last move, and then he would settle forever.
*
* * * *
‘Noah is moving again,’ said Sarah. ‘To
Zanadra.’
‘Where the heck is Zanadra?’ queried
Abraham.
‘Way out,’ responded Sarah. ‘It is an Andorran
planet. They have an active portal, but space travel is a long
wait.’
‘It always is,’ responded Abraham.
‘Apparently
this is it,’ she continued. ‘The absolutely and final move
forever. Titea is happy with the place from the photos she has seen
of it and Noah was ready to settle permanently in Rainbow Valley
anyway.’
‘So he has found his place of repose,’
responded Abraham. ‘Good for him.’
‘We have, though,
haven’t we?’ she asked him honestly.
Abraham looked at her
thoughtfully. ‘It is a long eternity, in the end Sarah. A long
eternity. But probably. The more time I spend on Televon the more at
home I am. I doubt we will ever have a more permanent place to live
in.’
‘Then that is good,’ she said. ‘As I have been
laying down a lot of eternal roots here, husband. A lot of eternal
roots.’
‘Then so be it,’ he responded.
Later
on Abraham looked out his window at the city. Here he was – Televon
– primarily a Jewish planet for the most part, and in the centre of
humanity’s civilization in the heavenlies. Perhaps, in the end, it
was home. And Sarah seemed content with that idea at least
anyway.
* * * * *
Ambriel was at it
again. Yet again. Only a few months to go in their wager, and he was
now to pull out a major move on his opponent.
‘What is it?’
said Ariel.
‘Don’t open your eyes yet,’ responded
Ambriel, but Daniel was looking anyway.
‘Good grief,
Ambriel. Good on you,’ said Daniel, staring at the
monstrosity.
‘Can I open my eyes?’ asked Ariel.
‘Go
ahead,’ responded Ariel.
She opened her eyes and looked and,
in front of her, on the front lawn of Danielphon, a statue. A very
very large statue, at least 12 foot tall, all of solid chocolate by
the looks of it. And, to make matters worse for Daniel, it was of
Ariel. On closer inspection Ariel noticed her chocolate counterpart
had a card in her hands which had ‘From Ambriel, to dear Ariel,’
written on it.
‘Are you sure its enough chocolate?’
queried Daniel. ‘I mean, you couldn’t have made it that little
bit bigger.’
Ambriel ignored him. ‘Now, Ariel,’ said
Ambriel. ‘Don’t eat it all at once. And remember to save some for
me.’
‘Oh, Amby Wamby,’ shrieked Ariel, and gave him a
hug. Ambriel stared at Daniel from the corner of his eye, but all
Daniel would say was ‘Good grief.’
Later on, Ariel
having broken off a finger, was eating the said chocolate with her
hot coffee for dessert after a lavish dinner she cooked for Daniel
and Ambriel.
‘My, this is lovely chocolate,’ said
Ariel.
‘The finest the realm has to offer,’ responded
Ambriel.
‘I’ll bet,’ said Daniel, under his
breath.
‘Oh, just ignore him,’ said Ariel. ‘He’s just
jealous after all.’
Daniel grinned at her, but said nothing.
Could there be any point in bothering to compete now?
*
* * * *
Gabriel was sitting there, puffing away on a
joint, when Cindradel buzzed him to let him know Michael was wanting
to see him. He put the joint in his ash tray, said ‘Let him in’
and Michael walked in, nodded to him, grabbed a can of Coke from the
fridge, and sat down opposite him.
‘What’s new?’ Michael
asked.
Gabriel smiled, picked up his joint, and said ‘Do you
want a puff?’
Michael looked at it and almost swore at
Gabriel. It was hardly the example he expected of his brother but,
knowing that Gabriel indeed was now overseer of Zaphon, it would be
best to remain circumspect.
‘Uh, no thanks.’
‘Come
on, Mikey. We’ve smoked this stuff before. It’s a natural
substance which God created. Why are you getting your knickers in a
knot.’
‘For starters, they are not that good for your
health. And there are a lot of other problems with the stuff.’
‘Oh,
poppycott. You are just a spoil sport. Life goes on anyway,
Mikey.’
‘I guess so,’ he responded, taking a sip of
Coke.
‘So what brings you around?’ Gabriel asked
his brother.
‘Oh, just checking up. You have been in the job
a while now. I guess you must be getting used to it.’
‘Oh,
yeh. I guess so. Honestly, I have palmed off a lot of the official
duties to various delegates, and a lot of the time I sit in this
office only signing the most important documents which have to have
the overseer’s signature. That is mostly about it. A bit of an
office job.’
‘It can be more than that, you know,’
responded Michael. ‘It is a great opportunity in the end. To make a
name for yourself.’
‘I have that already,’ responded
Gabriel.
‘I know,’ said Michael, taking another sip of
Coke. ‘But you can work on the name you already own. Do something
lavish. I don’t know – build something grand – make some great
plan. Pass a great law. You know Gab – impress people.’
‘Why?’
asked Gabriel.
Michael looked at him slightly perplexed. ‘Why?
What do you mean why? Because, well, you know. Its your reputation in
the end, brother. They will remember what you did in the end.’
‘I
think,’ began Gabriel in response,’ that you are making way to
big a deal out of this. And, perhaps, life in general. I mean, we
have known each other a long time, Mikey, and I have always looked up
to you and respected you. But a lot of the time all people need to
know is somebody competent is in charge, doing what they are supposed
to be doing, and not greatly interfering with their own personal
lives. And, in the end, life bloody goes on anyway, as they say. If I
really need some great accomplishment to justify myself as an
overseer, well…’
‘Well what,’ said Michael.
‘Well,
that can wait a trillion years until I bloody well get around to it.’
Gabriel stared at his brother for a few moments, hopefully getting
something of his own lesson across, and then softened.
‘Look,
sure. If it will make you happy I will come up with something. Some
grand plan. I don’t know – I’ll build a tower in Terraphora or
something. Bigger than Zaphon even. Make it the new centre of the
universe.’
‘Could be a good idea,’ responded Michael
thoughtfully.
Gabriel smiled. ‘Well if it will make you
happy, consider it a done thing.’
Michael smiled at him.
‘Come on, Gab. Look, I am not having a go at your style of
governance. You have to do it as you see fit in the end anyway –
after all, you are now overseer. Overseer of the Realm of Eternity.
But, if I was in your shoes, I would want to leave a legacy. Leave a
reputation as someone who accomplished things and changed the world
for the better. You know. Made a mark.’
Gabriel thought on
that for a moment, and nodded. ‘Yeh. I guess so, Mikey. I guess
so.’
‘Definitely.’ He got to his feet, looked out of the
window over Zaphona city, and made his way to the fridge, pinching
another can of Coke. ‘You don’t mind do you?’ he said,
indicating the Coke.
‘Take them all if you want,’
responded Gabriel, which made Michael smile.
‘Think
over what I said,’ responded Michael.
‘Will do,’ nodded
Gabriel, as Michael disappeared out of his office.
He
looked at his joint, put it out, and turned back to his PC screen.
But Michael’s words were on his mind. Leave a mark. Don’t be
forgotten. Perhaps there was something in that in the end.
Perhaps.
* * * * *
Ruth sat next to
Margaret, as she had done, in the synagogue service for the last few
Sabbaths. Margaret had now begun her official studies into the
conversion process and was breezing through it so far. Whatever else,
she was certainly prepared for her sojourn into the Jewish way of
life.
The service complete the Rabbi came up to them
and said ‘Shabbat Shalom’.
‘Shabbat Shalom,’ responded
Ruth.
‘Shabbat Shalom,’ responded Margaret.
Later
on as they were back at Ruth’s place, enjoying the cold meal Ruth
had prepared the previous afternoon, Margaret seemed to have
something about her. A peace – a spirit – and all that Ruth could
surmise that it was the Holy Spirit. God seemed to have settled on
this particular lady, perhaps impressed with her devotions, and Ruth
was sure she felt Hashem’s presence during the meal.
They
ate to their fill, enjoyed the ice cream, and Margaret retired for
the afternoon in the guest room, dozing away until Shabbat had
passed.
Around 7.30 she rose, came out into the living
room were Boaz and Ruth were sitting in front of a burning fire
place, and smiled. ‘I feel. New,’ she said.
‘What do you
mean?’ inquired Boaz.
‘Like a new beginning. Like I have
started a new journey. An eternal journey.’
‘We love you
with us,’ said Ruth.
‘I know,’ responded
Margaret.
Margaret wanted to go home that night,
instead of waiting until the following day, and as they drove out the
dirt track the 10 miles out of town, Ruth and Margaret hummed some
sabbath service songs and were in a high spiritual place. She was so
serious, thought Ruth. So determined to be Jewish, as if it was
everything to her.
When they were driving back after
having dropped Margaret off, Boaz made an interesting
comment.
‘Perhaps that is what the fuss is supposed to be
about. As a priestly nation. An encounter with Hashem like nothing
else. Drawing close to him. Becoming his chosen.’
Ruth
nodded. ‘But perhaps it is more than that, Boaz. Perhaps it is
Margaret’s obvious love for God which draws him close to her. She
is so incredibly devoted to pure Torah spirituality. She has been all
along, especially in her time as a Noahide.’
‘Perhaps she
was destined for it,’ put in Boaz.
‘Perhaps,’ responded
Ruth.
As they drove along in quiet, the car heater
warming them up on a cool evening, Ruth thought on her own devotion
to the God of Israel, the God of Naomi. God had taken her in, brought
her into his own sacred community. Really, she owed him everything.
But to see the devotion of Margaret Johnson towards her God – well
it was very special. And in seeing that devotion she felt something
of a kindling in her own heart. To find that God which Margaret
placed her faith in. To find that devotion to Torah truth, and
fidelity to El Shaddai. She would pray, now, for a while. She would
pray very seriously. And, as Torah taught, she would draw close to
God with the promise that he would draw close in return. For she had
been inspired and, in the life of eternity before her, she had
already made the choice a million times before to serve God. Perhaps,
now, with inspiration, she could draw even closer. Draw even closer
to the God who loved her and called her as his own. To find the heart
of glory. To find the heart of love.
* * * *
*
Andrew took the fork to his mouth, almost bit into
the lasagne, but put it down. He looked across at Bianca.
‘What?’
she said, as she continued eating.
‘I saw Jessica the other
day. At the club. She followed me there. We had a drink. She asked me
to come back to her place for dinner.’
Bianca continued
eating her lasagne, not responding. Eventually she put down her fork,
finished her mouthful and looked at him. ‘How long is this going to
go on, Andrew? How long?’
He put down his fork. ‘Well, I
don’t know. What can I say? Jessica and I dated for a long time. We
were probably going to get married. You know that as well as I
do.’
‘But you aren’t with Jessica anymore, are you? You
aren’t, are you?’
‘No,’ he responded, and said nothing
more.
She stared at him for a few moments, and looked
down at her lasagne. ‘I can’t eat this. I’ll have it tomorrow.’
She stood, put the plate in the fridge, and wandered over to the
couch, putting on the TV. Andrew finished his lasagne, and came over
to sit next to her. As they watched 60 minutes, Bianca spoke up. ‘She
won’t give up, you know. Not until she has you. I have seen the
look in her eyes. She is determined to have you back.’
‘Look.
It will just take some time, ok. Jessica will come to understand,
eventually, that you and I are together now. She will just have to
get the point.’
‘And if she doesn’t?’
He went
silent. ‘I’ll take care of it. One way or another, I will take
care of it.’
‘Then you do that,’ she said with the
slightest air of anger in her voice.
Andrew knew the situation
was coming to a head. He would have to do something about it one way
or another. And he would. He would.
* * * * *
‘Do
you love me Abraham?’
Abraham, finishing off his fruit salad
for breakfast, looked across at Sarah. ‘Why do you ask me that
question? I say it often enough, don’t I’
‘Then you
won’t mind a special request.’
‘Which is?’
‘Let’s
visit Noah. In Zanadra.’
‘I assume we would have gotten
around to that in the end anyway, dearly beloved.’
‘Yes. I
know. But I want to see Zanadra. It’s important.’
‘And
why is that?’
She looked at him seriously, took a bite of
her fruit salad, and put down her spork. ‘Ok. Well, ok.’
‘Spit
it out,’ he said seriously.
‘I think it was God. It was
the theophany in a dream. He appeared to me. Said it was time to
settle and that Noah seemed to be making the decision for the
family.’
Abraham looked at her, took another bite of his
salad, and put down his spork, stood and walked around the room.
‘He
wants us to settle in Zanadra?’
‘I think he wants a final
settling place. He probably has dreams or plans for us. Wants us to
commit to somewhere. To never move again. That is what I think he
wants of us.’
‘You may be right. But why Zanadra?’
‘I
am not really sure if it matters that much as to where, dear husband.
It is about finally finding our resting place and committing. That is
what he wants.’
He looked at her seriously. ‘Ok. We will
visit Noah after he is settled for a while. Discuss the issue. But it
will take a firm decision if we are to leave Televon.’
‘I
know,’ she said. ‘But you are a man of firm decisions.’
‘I
like to think so,’ he responded, sitting down, picking up his
spork, and returning to his fruit salad.
* * * *
*
Noah looked at the valley. It was so much like
Andorra on earth, from all he had seen of the place. The trees quite
similar, and the landscape, the sculpting of the hills, the general
layout, all similar. The place was up for sale in universal credits,
which he had plenty of. Sure, they could afford it and, while there
were ample places on the planet yet to be developed, this valley
seemed to be saying to his heart ‘Welcome Home.’
He
looked at the realtor. ‘We’ll take it.’
‘You are
sure,’ she said. ‘It’s a big decision. Even for someone like
you Noah.’
‘I’m sure,’ he responded.
Titea
came over, stood next to him and spoke. ‘So this is it?’
‘This
is it, I guess,’ he responded. ‘Now all we have to do is name the
place.’
‘I have the perfect title,’ she
responded.
‘Which is?’
‘Titea’s Dream.’
He
looked at her, and nodded, and looked out at the valley. ‘Titea’s
dream it is.’
And they were home.
* * * *
*
Blaze, finishing off the shoeing of the horse, was
hot. He walked over to the tap, turned it on, and poured water over
his forehead. It was a hot one.
Life had been good for
a while, now, since coming to his new home. He had a place in the
ranch bunks in the outhouse, and with the other 2 ranch hands he was
a needed man, and finding himself at home. And there was a young one
– a 16 year old lass – who had her eye on him. Young Janice, the
owner’s daughter. He wouldn’t make any moves though. He couldn’t.
He had baggage, a lot to deal with, before he would ever face that
issue again.
What Blaze had done had destroyed his
life in many ways. After months of soul-searching he had finally
broken down and confessed his sins to God in prayer. It had been
agony before then, deep guilt staining his soul. A mark of darkness,
never to be forgiven or so it felt, before he had broken down, cried,
and asked for forgiveness. And then it had come, late that night,
softly opening up his heart and saying it would be better, now. That
he had learned what he had needed to learn about what he had
done.
But, while the guilt was gone, God was softly
telling him that, in the end, if he didn’t go home and face his
judgement, judgement would inevitably come to him. But he couldn’t.
He couldn’t face Danielle. He couldn’t bear to look at her again,
or to know she was looking at him. After what he had done, nothing
could ever bridge the gap between them. The girl he loved had not
love him and the one she had loved he had killed. How could he ever
hope to be forgiven for that? No. That was a joke. Going home. A
joke. Sure, God had forgiven him, but facing judgement was
impossible. Impossible.
He was a fugitive from
justice, and he knew it. And, while he sincerely hoped it wouldn’t
be forever, that a new life would one day beckon him, he knew for the
time being that he was to be serving, to be working off his sin, and
that he would be doing so for thousands, probably millions of years,
before a softer heart would speak to him and tell him to come
home.
Yet, while he had that hope, there was still
something which lingered – the word of God to him – the word of
judgement. There was a trial coming, one day. He did not know what it
was, or how it would affect him, but retribution would come for his
sin. And Blaze, on judgement day, better be well prepared for it or
else.
* * * * *
‘Are you going to
lose, Danny?’
Daniel took a sip of milk from his glass over
the breakfast table, and looked squarely at Callodyn.
‘That
is up to Ariel?’
‘What’s up to me?’ asked Ariel,
coming into the room.
‘Nothing,’ responded Daniel, looking
at Callodyn.
Callodyn turned to Ariel. ‘So. Ambriel.
He really has impressed you, has he?’
‘Oh, he has been
wonderful,’ responded Ariel. ‘Thoughtful, considerate with his
words, paying me great attention all the time. And the gifts have
been second to none.’
Callodyn nodded. ‘Then I guess
Daniel can expect the poo.’
Ariel looked at her twin. ‘That
depends on Daniel, I suppose. But, so you both will know, I haven’t
reached a definite decision yet. They both have time.’
Daniel
said nothing, but stared at Callodyn.
‘Oh, by the way
Daniel, it is horse shit. I am sure you will be glad to know that.
But Ambriel hopes to make it as fresh as possible. Just so you know
that.’
‘Sure,’ said Daniel, but said nothing
more.
She poured herself a glass of orange juice,
smiled at them both, and left the room.
‘Horse
shit?’ said Callodyn. ‘Well, that is not the end of the world.
Mostly grass and stuff. It could be worse you know.’
‘The
mercies of Ambriel,’ muttered a dejected Seraphim.
*
* * * *
Gabriel looked at the whiteboard on his
office. Two ideas. Only two good ideas.
First, indeed
built a bloody tower in Terraphon, upwards like Zaphon, but he had
written underneath that the idea that for all the capitals of the
discs, there should be a central tower, looming high into the sky, in
the Zaphon tower tradition. It actually sounded like a good idea now.
The other idea was for a portal network to be located in the capital
of each disc, in the tower itself. Presently there were a series of
portals at various locations in the realm, but having a portal for
movement in each capital in the base of the tower seemed to be the
best way to connect the future overseers of the realm. Of course, it
would go on forever, wouldn’t it? The Realm of Eternity? Being just
that – eternal. A good portal system connecting capitals seemed
like a good idea, but it would naturally need approval from the
Theophany. Only he could manufacture them and only he could approve.
But Gabriel felt confident in the idea.
Still, he
needed another idea – a big one – something to leave his mark,
perhaps eternally, on the eternal realm. He would come up with one,
in time, and impress Michael. And, if it really was that important in
the end anyway, leave his mark, his legacy. Even Aquariel might be
impressed in the end – perhaps it would be worth the effort in the
end. So he stared at the whiteboard, thought over things, and hoped
for one really good idea. One idea for which Gabriel the Seraphim
would be remembered – eternally.
Chapter
Eleven
‘The beast is who?’
‘The first
beast is the Celestine Prophecy. It works contrary to the teaching of
the church, as the novel itself describes,’ responded Jesus of
Nazareth.
‘And what are the 10 horns?’ queried King
David.
‘The 10 insights.’
‘And the 7
Heads?’
‘The 7 main founding bodies. Redfield’s own
founding body and, further, the Celestine Foundation, Celestial
Blessing, Celestine Warriors of Virtue, The Celestine Brigade, The
Celestine Way and the Celestine Prophets.’
‘So that is the
Antichrist beast is it Jesus?’ queried King David. ‘They seem
lawful enough people. What is your problem with them?’
‘They
represent the heart of false religion – the insights are all
ludicrous, totally at odds with sound science and nature – and it
attracts cultists looking for an escape from the
Almighty.’
Daniel, who had been invited to this
little chat, spoke up. ‘You are possibly correct in some points,
Yesh. Some of the insights are a bit funky. I am a member of one of
those organisations and there are some funny members. But they do
proclaim a strong morality ethic.’
‘Which is a challenge
on God’s morality, Daniel. You should know this better than anyone
else.’
‘When will this beast arise?’ queried
Daniel.
‘It will be in both the heavenlies and on earth. But
I really can’t say when. Both heaven and earthly realities will be
affected but, trust me, Satan will again have his day.’
‘So
you say,’ said King David.
‘You failed last time,’ put
in Daniel.
‘Not this time,’ responded Jesus. ‘Paul’s
words also needed to be fulfilled. But now you know who the beast is.
And, believe me, the world will eventually wonder after it, full of
admiration for its escapist spirituality.’
David smiled,
drank some more of his latte, finding Jesus latest doctrinal stance
interesting, but Daniel observed his words. It sounded interesting,
either way. He was not really sure if James Redfield was the
progenitor of the Antichrist Beast, but it sounded interesting.
Perhaps he would look into it.
‘And who is the false
prophet? The two horned beast?’ queried Daniel.
‘It will
arise in the presence of the Antichrist beast. You will see in
time.’
‘Right,’ said Daniel. He would wait and watch to
see any fulfilment in the genuine ideas of Jesus himself on the
subject.
* * * * *
‘Apparently,’
replied James Redfield, founder of the Celestine Prophecy, ‘Jesus
has made many claims in the past over who the beast actually was.
Usually it is found to be fraudulent. Usually he is mistaken. He has
affected many lives with this accusatory message, something those
Pentecostals do quite a lot. Accuse people of being sinners and
unholy and that they are the special chosen ones.’
‘I
know,’ responded Daniel ‘I was a Pentecostal.’
‘It
falls through in the end, Daniel. You will see that Jesus is just
like me. In a funny way, we are children of your New Agenda, both
Jesus and I. We pursue a new vision on spirituality to bring new
enlightenment to the world. In a funny way, to remake the world in
our own image as Gandhi might say, be the change you want to see in
the world. Spirituality is a large world of belief of many diverse
things. To try and contain the summation of spiritual thought into
just one religious viewpoint, as Jesus seems to claim for his
Christian faith, well….. Well that is just stupid Daniel. Pride
filled, arrogant and naïve. Sure, in the end, even I have a copy of
the New Testament and read it from time to time. But there is more in
heaven and on earth than is dreamed of in Jesus Christ’s
philosophy, dear Horatio.’
‘If you say so James,’
responded Daniel.
* * * * *
Jesus was
defending himself against Daniel’s statements on what James
Redfield maintained.
‘The beast comes in many ways and many
forms, and is a reality from generation to generation. The Revelation
teaches eternal truths in this sense, Daniel. That those who rebel
against God and his holy covenant will find death and destruction in
the pit of Gehenna for their pride in opposing the truth of God’s
holy laws.’
‘And what of Judaism?’ queried Daniel.
‘I
have no qualms with the Jewish religion. Remember, I told my
followers that not one jot or tittle of the law would be done away
with until the fulfilment of all things.’
‘Right,’
responded Mr Daly, and looked at him. ‘A transient book, with no
clear identification of the beast, which can change with the wind of
Christian doctrine in accusatory self pride as they see fit.’
‘If
you wish to describe us that way,’ responded Yeshua.
‘Perhaps
I do,’ responded Daniel, with a little heat in his voice. ‘Perhaps
I do.’
* * * * *
‘Don’t go making
trouble between you and Jesus,’ Ariel stressed. ‘It is not worth
the hassle, Danny.’
‘The man is a pompous asshole. Thinks
he is the Lord of the bloody universe.’
‘Yes, he does make
that claim,’ responded Ariel, a faint smile on her face.
‘Yes.
Yes he bloody does. Trinity has gone to his head – thinks he is God
himself. But, as I recall from the prophets, Lucifer made such a
claim. To be like the most high, exalting himself over the angels of
God. Looks as if we have found who our saviour really is – the dark
lord enshrouded as a god of righteousness. As they say, Lucifer comes
to you as an angel of light.’
‘Oh, leave Jesus alone,’
responded Ariel. ‘He is just a Jew on a bloody mission as you often
maintain. He is simply headstrong. Protective of his bloody
church.’
Daniel looked at her, didn’t want to admit the
truth, but went on grumbling about Jesus bloody Christ all afternoon
anyway.
* * * * *
Daniel was still
pissed off. He organised a team from one of his fellowships, went off
interviewing eccentric Pentecostal pastor’s and hired the big
channels for a night-time special.
‘The beast is
David Rothchild,’ said the first Pastor. ‘Clearly, the most
adversarial person to the true Christ, claiming to be Messiah
himself. Of that the ‘Pentecostal Life Changers’ have no
doubt.
‘Callodyn’s 7 Divine Fellowship’s are the
beast,’ said another pastor. ‘They are the most abhorrent
opponent to true Christian faith. Nothing but mockery.’ Daniel
smiled at this guy – full on, huh Yesh?
‘Judaism
still represents the beast,’ said an Arian Pentecostal Pastor.
‘They still deny the true Christ and, at the end of time, the beast
will arise to make war with the church, but Jesus, the King of Kings
and Lord of Lords, will emerge triumphant.’
‘Classic,’
thought Daniel to himself.
‘The Beast is a
conglomeration of the 7 universal forces of Evil,’ began a pastor
with the beginnings of a very new agey response to the question. ‘For
as God is represented by 7 divine forces of goodness and love, there
are correspondingly 7 evil forces, represented by the 7 Saruvim, and
Satan himself is the 7th spirit of this evil. There are 7 ages of
darkness, 7 pillars of pride and evil, 7….’ And so on and so on
went they mysteries of the 7 dark forces, in the words of a truly
enlightened Pentecostal pastor. Daniel smiled. This was really
putting Jesus on the spot.
‘The beast is Jesus
himself,’ said another very funny looking pastor, with a 666 tattoo
on his forehead. He is the ultimate dichotomy between good and evil
manifest. In him we worship God. In him we revel in evil and
darkness, our true selves, and serve the might of evil. For Jesus is
lord of light and Jesus is lord of dark. All is Jesus and Jesus is
all.’ And so on went the pastor for several minutes and Daniel,
interviewing them all, turned to the camera and said ‘Amazing.’
*
* * * *
The show was an amazing rater and the channels
were happy to welcome Daniel back if he wanted a follow up. But, in
the end, Daniel decided that would do. Jesus had been taught a
sufficient enough lesson for the moment.
* * * *
*
‘He is moving where?’
‘Zanadra. In
fact, they are in the process of building the new ranch already. It
is a fair way out, but it is home. But Sarah says Abraham is
considering joining him – permanently. The final resting place of
Avraham, possibly.’
Jacob, sitting at the breakfast table,
picked up his chocolate croissant, nibbled on it, and put it back
down. ‘He wants to leave Televon? I thought this was it, in the
end. Our eternal resting place.’
‘Apparently not. But, as
Sarah maintained in her email, it could take an eternity to find an
eternal home, and Noah is leading the way on this issue.’
Jacob
thought on that issue. ‘Noah has long been a restless soul. But I
do admit I felt Rainbow Valley would be the final destination. He
seemed to surmise as much himself.’
‘Yet Titea was
restless.’
He looked at Rachel cautiously. ‘Do you want us
to move there? To leave Televon and the family?’
‘We can
always have more family. Start again. Get established again. Perhaps
a new beginning in many ways – a new adventure.’
‘Yet I
had always thought the purpose of establishing was to set up an
eternal home.’
‘We don’t need to go, in the end. We can
stay here.’
‘No. If Abraham goes, and says he will stay,
we will go also. I am sure father will agree.’
‘Isaac is
with him at the moment.’
‘Then we will wait and see. If it
is meant to be, I am sure we will find out soon enough.’
‘Will
you speak with Leah?’
‘I’ll have words.’ He picked up
his crossword book, looked at the puzzle, filled in a word, and
thought on moving again. Titea’s idea, apparently. But, if this was
to be the final location for Noah, it made sense for the family to
join them. It didn’t matter, in the end, as to were. It just
mattered that they stabilised, put down roots, and settled forever.
Zanadra sounded interesting, so if all went well with Noah and
Abraham he was already of the mind to make the move. Perhaps one last
resettling was in the heart of Jacob. One final home.
*
* * * *
Daniel was out the back of Danielphon, in one
of the archival rooms he used. Danielphon itself was currently 4
stories high, over about 100 square meters of land. It was the
property which he had obtained long ago when such land became
available and, in the heart of Zaphora, pretty much surrounded by
Zaphona city which encompassed nearly all the land of Zaphora now
anyway, apart from area around Golden Lake and the traditional
farming sector which was still maintained, he was a very wealthy
angel as Danielphon was valued at Realm Credits of great value. If he
ever sold it he would be rich, but had no such intentions.
He
was in his archives, presently, looking at some older comics. Some
DC’s from the early days – the very early days – when they were
still working on their traditions. He had a superman comic in a mylar
sleeve he was looking at and a Green Lantern was sitting on the
table, ready to be examined. Mostly these issues were available these
days in Trade Paperback Format in which a bulk load of issues were
printed together. But, in the end, while he knew they were an asset
technically, his great wealth meant there was no real point in trying
to sell them for money anyway, so he would simply enjoy looking at
the ancient relics from time to time, bringing back memories, and
store them away again for some other aeon for him to look at. Sure,
they wouldn’t last forever in the end if you handled them, but that
didn’t matter. In the end, unless you could derive some pleasure
from a collectable item such as a comic or a record, then what was
the point apart from a purely asset based business reason, which
Daniel didn’t really need to worry about.
As he sat
there, reading Action comics #2098, he was happily lost in Superman’s
particular adventure, off in a world of his own, not worried about
the machinations of Ambriel towards his twin, letting fate now decide
that encounter.
He had now made up his mind. Let Ariel
choose Ambriel, if she must. If loyalty to him wasn’t on the cards,
there was no point in competing now. Ambriel had too much of a
lead.
He didn’t really look forward to being dumped
in pile of horse shit, but worse things could happen. Still, if that
was destiny, that was destiny. Superman didn’t seem to care either
way.
* * * * *
Ruth looked at the
television program. Rabbi Cohen’s sermons were on soon, a popular
television show on Televon. Perhaps, she thought to herself.
Especially in her recent devotions to God from Margaret’s
inspiration to her. But, no. She switched to a cooking show and, as
midday passed, she sat there, knitting another jumper, taking some
notice of the deluxe chocolate cake being prepared, in a world of her
own.
Boaz walked into the living room, carrying a
stamp album, looked at her and came and patted her on the shoulder,
and went to his desk, sitting down, looking through the folder.
‘I
am selling a stamp,’ he blurted out.
She looked at him,
curiously. It was not something he was in the habit of doing –
actually selling some of his permanent stamp collection.
‘Why?’
she asked honestly.
‘Why not?’ he responded. ‘In the
end, there are collectors out there who have valued my collection for
a long time. I thought I may as well list one online, and see what
kind of money I can get. We can go on an extra special holiday, then.
Maybe even visit Zanadra.’
‘Zanadra?’ she
inquired.
‘Zanadra,’ he confirmed.
Now what was all
that about, Ruth mused to herself.
* * * * *
‘I
don’t want your money honey, I want your love.’
‘Excuse
me?’ said Noah. What did you say Titea?’
‘What?’ she
asked, looking at him, taking off her earphones.
‘You don’t
want my money, you were saying. You want my love.’
‘Oh,
every last bit, Noey.’
‘Good to know,’ he said,
smooching down next to her.
‘Look, Abraham is due in
about half an hour. Is there anything you want me to wear?’
She
looked him over. ‘You will do. Abraham is not that fussy, Noah. He
is your son anyway. He should be looking good for you.’
‘He
usually makes an effort,’ responded Noah. ‘Perhaps I should
change. Put on a shirt and some better trouser.’
‘Jeans
are fine. He won’t be bothered by your Bulldogs top. It should be
fine.’
Noah was wearing a Canterbury Bankstown Bulldogs top,
the team he supported in the Rugby League competitions in the Realm
of Eternity and through various heavenly bodies.
The
two of them had brought a large collection of things from Rainbow
Valley with them to a house they were currently renting near ‘Titea’s
Dream’, and had spent the last few days purchasing some other
essential items for their new temporary home. It was home, for now,
until their new homestead had been planned out, built and ready for
moving into.
Noah went upstairs, looked in the closet
at the clothes he had, took of his bulldogs sweatshirt and put on a
plain red t-shirt instead. Coming downstairs he sat on the lounge
seat in the front room, waiting on Abraham. His son shouldn’t be
long now.
* * * * *
‘So do you want
to go and see the valley?’
Abraham nodded. ‘We’ll go now
then?’
‘I’ll grab the keys to the cruiser. It will take
us about 20 minutes to get there.’
As they drove,
the four of them chatted about this and that, Titea and Sarah in the
back seat, Noah and Abraham in the front, talking about
Zanadra.
‘Really, it is a lot like Europe for the
most part,’ commented Noah. ‘Andorran landscape dominates the
largest continent on which we are now, but the other 4 continents
look a lot like the UK and Germany, and some of Scandinavia. But, for
the most part, French and Spanish are spoken here, as well as the
official ‘Andorran’ tongue.
‘Andorra has a tongue?’
queried Abraham.
‘They’ve developed it gradually,’
responded Noah. ‘It is an admixture of mainly French and Spanish
words, with a bit of old German and some English and other European
words thrown in, but at least half of the language is original
wording, European sounding certainly, but developed by the Andorran
linguistic community specifically for Andorran planet and nations
throughout the heavenlies. They desired a specific cultural identity
in the end.’
‘Andorran,’ said Abraham. ‘Fascinating. I
guess you have learned some of it?’
‘Some,’ said Noah.
‘It is pretty easy to catch on to. It follows similar European stem
words and ideas for the most part. If you know French or Spanish,
though, you will always get by here.’
‘That’s a relief,’
responded Abraham.
Soon they arrived at ‘Titea’s
Dream’ and they got out of the cruiser, and looked over the valley,
covered with trees, but with a large section of central meadow
running through the valley.
‘We’ll be building up that
end,’ said Noah, pointing. ‘Just down from the trees a little,
near a little stream which runs down from the mountains’
Abraham
looked over the valley, summing it up. ‘It could house a few of us,
I guess.’
Noah looked at him and nodded to himself. ‘So,
it is true. You are planning on following me. Titea commented as
such.’
Abraham said nothing, but gazed over the valley. ‘How
much have you purchased?’
‘A fair chunk. Pretty much
everything you can see before us, and off into the hills into the
distance right up to the summit or thereabouts. I guess….’ He
left off.
Abraham turned to him. ‘Yes?’
‘I guess,
if we needed to, we could fit a fair few of us here. Upwards of a
small city of 20 or 30 thousand could probably fit in the valley
comfortably. Of course, people could settle elsewhere on the
planet.’
‘There are some of us I have in mind,’
responded Abraham.
‘Really?’ said Noah, gazing at his son.
‘Who?’
‘You know. The usual crew. The biblical ones
traditionally. The book seems to have formed a community of its own
for us anyway.’
Noah nodded. That much was true from his
history with his son Abraham. ‘That is a few million in the end.
Sure, we can expand and I can probably purchase more territory with a
good offer.’
‘You can afford it?’ queried Abraham.
‘I
can afford it,’ responded Noah. ‘I have been working on wealth
for a while, now. God always likes us prepared for a rainy day, as
you know.’
‘Yes,’ responded Abraham, still gazing at the
city. ‘Well, I had thought that Televon was ultimately to be the
place, but it looks as if Titea’s Dream has spoken.’
‘Then
so be it,’ said Noah.
‘So be it,’ responded
Abraham.
* * * * *
The crowd was hushed
as Gabriel came out. They were at a little park at the bottom of
Zaphon tower were news addresses were popularly given from Zaphon a
lot, and Gabriel had an announcement. Michael was in the crowd,
coming to hear what Gabriel had to say.
Shortly
Gabriel took the stand and began speaking.
‘Welcome,
everyone. Thanks for hearing what I have to say. Well, for the most
parts, this is a standard announcement, but I do have something on
some serious moral issues I would like addressed. Firstly, though, in
recent conversation with Michael we discussed the idea of towers,
like Zaphon behind us, being found also in Terraphora. Well, I have
been giving the idea some thought, and I would like to announce plans
from Zaphon for the suggesting of each disc capital to have a
corresponding tower, like Zaphon, to become the heart – in many
ways – of each disc. The tower is mean to represent the prestige of
life in a sense, a place were we can afford the fines life has to
offer us for those who have worked hard to afford lifes best
privileges. That is a natural thing, and I feel in the tower for each
capital the members of each disc can have something of a focus or an
ideal in mind for what represents the pinnacle of the lifestyle they
desire and can work to achieve. It is indeed meant to be a status
symbol in this sense, but that is a natural inclination amongst many
of us. We desire success, the dream, the high life. And while it is
very likely Zaphon tower will go on representing the pinnacle of such
achievement in the Realm of Eternity, it is important that each disc
be represented as such. So I will speak with the Seraphim in council
and many of the Cherubim and discuss this idea in detail.’ Gabriel
paused for a moment and resumed speaking. ‘Now, travel throughout
the Realm of Eternity and the other places has always been
challenging considering the vast distances involved and, for those
who can afford the prices, the portal system has been invaluable.
But, with the approval from the Theophany himself given to me, I plan
on having each proposed tower to have a portal located on base level.
In this sense, in the same way the status is attracted to the tower,
the ability to afford the travel of a portal will become a natural
part of this. They are meant to go hand in hand, in that sense.’ He
paused again before resuming. ‘Now, finally, there is another
issue. I want to address an issue of concern for many people, an
issue close to home, a fundamental issue. I have given it a lot of
thought, and I want to speak of a place called home. For many of us
finding a permanent place of residence has still, even for many aged
ones amongst us, not yet arisen. So many of us can have restless
hearts which are constantly searching for a home. And I want to
address that core issue. In time, with population and the completing
of realm cities in terms of final population numbers, it will become
inevitable that people find a place they do call home, and refrain
from moving. Some residents purchase a place, set up shop, and never
move again. And that is totally natural. What I want to speak of
today to the citizens of the Realm of Eternity is that core issue –
you need to find your home. You need to find where you belong, where
you feel comfortable, and what works for you. You need to find your
resting place. In time homes become filled and places which once were
available become available no more. Someone rests there, you see, and
calls it their eternal repose. It is an ongoing challenge, but each
of us here today, and those listening, need to have that on their
mind – to find their repose – to find their home. One day Zaphon
tower will become impossible to move into. Hotel’s will have
permanent residents, and the flats of the tower will be filled. Only
those who are the most determined to live and remain here will find
that. But that, inevitably, goes for each tower outwards in a spiral
fashion, and for each disc in general. They will be filled, in time,
and eventually people will call their place home. Which is as God
wants it I believe. We need to do this, residents of eternity. To
find our place, to find our home, when and where we can. It could be
too late one day, unless you are very lucky, so I will stress again.
Find your home, find your place in the world, and rest from your
searching for an eternal rest. I can not say the sooner the better,
as people need to find where they belong, but do it while you can. Do
it and find that place you call home.’ He paused again and said
‘Any questions,’ to which a number of reporters raised their
hands.
* * * * *
‘That wasn’t bad,
Gab. Sound advice. Good ideas in general.’
‘Make your
mark, you said. I felt the advice was strong, and the kind of thing
left unspoken usually on a national basis. Time to share the wisdom
with people.’
‘And you have found that home?’ he
queried.
‘I have a place here in Zaphon. But I am committed
to Terraphon. And a tower, like Zaphon here, sounds ideal. Yes, yes,
I think I have found my home.’
‘Then that is good,’ said
Michael, patting him on the back.
* * * * *
Cheryl
was back home in Terraphora, out on her back verandah of her flat,
chatting with Bill the Janitor.
‘Do you seek a home? A
permanent one? Like Gabriel said yesterday?’
‘Yeh, I saw
that on the news. Interesting ideas. I see the wisdom in what he was
going on about. Find a place eventually, settle, or move
forever.’
‘And what do you want?’
‘Probably
were I am living now. It makes me happy enough, the spirit of the
place, as they say. The ambience. I feel home there. Like I never
have to move again. I don’t think I will. Move again, that
is.’
‘What about Zaphon tower itself? What if you could
live there?’ she queried.
‘I don’t know,’ he
responded. ‘What if I could.’
‘Would you?’
‘Possibly,
sure. I don’t know. Maybe. But that is probably not reality. I
don’t think I will ever be able to afford it. But I am not sure if
I am worried about that anyway. I have already decided that I am
probably happy enough working forever, anyway, as it gives me a good
structure to my life, and my employers say they will keep me forever
if I like. So I am probably settled. Sure, Zaphon sounds great. But I
am happy were I am.’
‘I see,’ she said, studying him.
‘It has been my goal, you know. To own a place in Zaphon tower. To
live there forever. In the heart of the world. Right in the centre.
The idea has always attracted me – it is what I want.’
‘We
have to follow our dreams, don’t we Cheryl.’
‘Yes. Yes
we do,’ she said, looking at him.
He looked at her
for a few moments, and she was not sure if he was reading her
thoughts, but he said nothing. ‘Well, the drink has been fine. But
I have to get back to work.’
‘Yes. You do that,’ she
responded, looking at him. And, picking up his work hat, he went off
back to his tasks, but he did look back at her briefly and
smile.
* * * * *
Ariel was beaming. She
had been the centre of so much of Ambriel’s fervent attentions
recently, that she beamed, sitting at Ambriel and Meludiel’s table
in their kitchen, drinking hot chocolate with Meludiel, Ambriel out
in the other room working on a gift for her.
‘So,
Ari. Are you happy?’ queried Meludiel.
‘Oh, I am on cloud
9 these days. All the attention from your dearest is wonderful. He is
so attentive.’
Meludiel nodded. She knew the lovings of
Ambriel very well.
‘Have you reached a decision then?’
queried Meludiel.
Ariel looked at her as if she had asked a no
no, and answered cautiously, ‘I don’t say anything. I couldn’t.
But, yes, my heart is leaning towards a decision. It is up in the air
until the final day when I will make my final decision. It may depend
on Daniel’s attitude in the last few days, but that waits to be
seen. But I will make my decision when the time is right.’
Meludiel
nodded, sipping on her coffee.
Suddenly Ambriel appeared, all
dressed up in a rock and roll outfit, with a microphone in his hand.
‘The abodes stereos are turned on, Ari. So here goes.’
‘Baby
baby, you’re all the loving I need. Home cooking remedy to my
miseries. You make my dark days blue, and my sad days bright. Baby,
baby, baby, you are totally alright.’ And, as he sang on a song he
had written just for her, Ariel was raptured, while Meludiel just
looked on amused. What on earth would Daniel think of this, she
thought to herself.
* * * * *
Jacob
looked out over ‘Titea’s Dream’, in the presence of Noah and
Abraham. He had taken off as soon as Abraham had contacted him and
asked to come and see the place.
‘This is it, then?’
queried Abraham’s grand son.
‘I guess so,’ responded
Abraham. ‘It seems suitable enough. The language won’t be any
problem, and the people’s culture seems close enough to our own way
of life that all those issues seem to be fine. Noah says he is happy
with the place, so it should do us.’
Noah spoke up.
‘Settling permanently is the idea now, Jacob. Settling for good. I
know you are probably comfortable with Televon, but that looks as if
it was just the initial port of call until God had worked out were he
wanted us.’
‘So it’s God’s idea?’ queried Jacob.
‘I
think so,’ responded Noah. ‘Titea seems to think God placed the
idea in her heart, now. Says she has been getting dreams about the
place supposedly being the final resting place for her family. So I
guess this is it. Home.’
Jacob looked out at the valley.
‘Home,’ he said. Home.
* * * * *
At
‘Home’ God was on the back porch, staring out into the aurora,
drinking some apple jack, content with all. ‘Home’, he thought to
himself. ‘Time for people to settle. Time to find that place called
home.’ And he continued staring out at the aurora, at peace,
content with all that was.
hapter
Twelve
Leah was the wife of Jacob – father of the
people Israel. Jacob had two wives in Leah and Rachel and two
concubines in Bilhah and Zilpah. And, yes, he loved each of them
carefully and dearly having spent a long time developing a
relationship of care with his family.
As the father of
the people of Israel, Jacob had a peculiar covenant with Almighty God
– to be a chosen people, separated from humanity, for the purposes,
as Jacob saw it personally, of being a holy people. It was not, so it
was assumed by some of their critics, the job of Israel to convert
people to their religion. That was a choice a soul had to make. But
the making of that choice was supposed to be based upon an individual
desiring a careful and deep relationship with Hashem – one of love
and devotion, prayer and Sabbath observance, a kosher diet for
cleanliness reasons, and a strict morality code of holiness to ensure
a lawful and decent way of life. This is what Judaism was supposed to
represent to Jacob – a choice for someone who desired a stable
society for their future, one in which a strict legal code was
adhered to and a very moral life abided by. This is what Israel as a
people had to represent to mankind. A haven, in that sense, for
people to seek out and join when they had had enough of the
mainstream society of men and craved a society of lawfulness to be at
peace with God.
He knew, now, from further experience,
that there were a number of very serious Noahide bodies which
attempted to do the same thing. Callodyn and Daniel’s ‘Haven’
was meant to offer a similar pathway to Israelite faith, so Daniel
had once shared with Jacob, but one in which circumcision was not
necessary, a sticking point for a number of Noahides. Jacob
understood this so ensured his people taught and continued to
maintain their own perspective on Noahide teaching to offer others
who desired holiness in the Jewish tradition a way of life of
holiness without necessarily going all the way of converting to
Judaism. In this sense Noahides were generally the kind of children
of men who were closer to Israel and what the Jewish people felt were
the kind of standards appropriate for a decent society without
necessarily being Jewish.
Having been resurrected at
one point in the history to live with mankind in the world to come,
before that point they had first been resurrected from Sheol to live
in heaven with God at beginning of the feast of Hannukah with the
dedication of the restored temple. The teaching of the resurrection
to heaven from Sheol had been shown in the Book of Daniel in the
final chapters, but Jacob had later learned there was much confusion
on the interpretation of that book. At that time they had lived with
the children of heaven in heaven, but then they had been resurrected
to enjoy their glory on earth. But that had ended in the end, and
they had come to the final resurrection to eternal life in the
planetary bodies designed for mankind. And that first port of call
had been Televon.
But now things had – changed. It
seemed, from where Titea had been drawn, that Israel was to have one
final port of call before settling eternally. And that was to be
Zanadra.
All things considered the planet itself was
warm and welcoming. The summers were not too hot and the winters were
not too cold from all reports. It got its decent share of sunshine,
but had cooler weather also for the plants to relax and for people to
go inside on rainy days and play jigsaws, and read books, and share
stories over a meal.
All things considered, the size
of the planet being approximately earth sized also, it seemed the
ideal place to finally settle forever. Noah had found it – Abraham
had agreed – so Jacob now had the job of going through his address
book, finding all those family members, and potentially close
friends, who he felt would be appropriate to join the family in its
final settling place.
* * * * *
Sarah
was the wife of Abraham. He also had another wife named Keturah, and
his concubine Hagar. Sarah was the mother of Isaac, who was Jacob’s
father, and Hagar was the mother of Ishmael.
As the
grandfather of Jacob, Abraham had a special place in God’s heart,
so the theophany of God shared with him. Noah and his descendants
were covenanted to God by the sign of the Rainbow. Yet Abraham was
further covenanted by sign of the Circumcision. Done on the 8th day,
it was often taught this covenant was one of divine intervention –
reconciling the world to God, away from the temptations of evil and
sin. It was a traditional teaching, Abraham did not personally object
to it, and in it he found something of a purpose to his life and role
in mankind.
He was a father of nations, for Edom and
Israel both came from his seed through Isaac, amongst other seeds of
his other children as well. This had been his covenant with
God.
In the eternal in heaven that role, specifically,
had not so much changed, but not so much been officially validated
either. God had never mandated in the heavenly worlds that Judaism
was meant to continue as a religion of observance, but neither had he
declared it null and void. In fact, he constantly refrained from
talking specifically on that issue. According to his offspring, David
Rothchild, the community should know well enough now that they needed
a sensible law code and way of life to run things, so there was
little point in discontinuing the established tradition. And, in that
idea, they continued and maintained their role. God did not comment
either way.
Like many of the sons of Jacob, Abraham
for so long had found his legacy on Televon, but perhaps that was
just meant to be the first port of call while things were being
established and sorted out. Now Zanadra beckoned and seemed to be
suggesting to Abraham’s heart that this was the big move and the
final move. That on Zanadra he would find his eternal rest and his
soul’s consolation.
It seemed a friendly planet, and
the Andorran residents seemed suitable and friendly enough to
cohabitate with. Settling there in terms of citizenship requirements
had been waved by the council of Zanadra for Noah instantly, and
Abraham had been assured that he and his family would have no
troubles in relocating there if they so chose.
Thus,
with Titea leading the way ultimately, they had found what appeared
to be their eternal repose, and Abraham was in the process of digging
up roots, which was always difficult, but for the purpose of
re-establishing them – forever.
* * * * *
Noah
was married to Titea – his wife. Yet he was also married to Naamah,
his other wife. Naamah, though, was separated from him for the time
being. She lived on the disc of Nadrazon, the Silver City, of the
Realm of Infinity, far away from Noah most of the time. And this had
been the case for the last 100,000 years. It was not that she no
longer loved Noah – not at all. In fact, they remained close. But
Naamah desired to live alone for a while, to be her own woman, too
live a quiet life of prayer and devotions to God in a simple
community dedicated to this purpose, and be at peace. So she was
separate from Noah for the time being, but would eventually return.
She had promised him she would, but he was content, for now, to live
with Titea and have the one wife as his main focus.
And
it had been Titea who had uprooted him from Rainbow Valley, dragging
him half way across the universe, to Zanadra of all
places.
Zanadra – a place nobody had heard of –
the final resting place of father Noah.
It seemed,
now, from all the recent discussions with them, that Abraham and
Jacob were of the mind to join him and, then, a number of key members
of the family. Naturally, they couldn’t really just go picking and
choosing who should live were, but they knew they had a lot of
influence – a lot of say with the family – and that if Abraham
chose a place for the resting of the family, and asked a number to
join them, then most, if not all, likely would.
The
Andorran culture seemed a suitable enough one to enshroud themselves
with. From Noah’s conversations so far they were a friendly enough
bunch, happy enough for Noah to be amongst them, and Abraham had
received a similar welcoming. The valley ‘Titea’s Dream’ was
now expected to house a number of their immediate families and,
ultimately, to be the chosen resting place for his family.
Oh,
Noah knew he had so many out there amongst humanity who were his, but
only so many were chosen and only so many chose God. And the closest
and most relevant to Noah’s life were the covenanted patriarchal
families and those others amongst mankind who had taken his name
amongst the Noahide community.
Amongst them, the early
Noahides were on his mind. In the early years of the faith when it
finally got properly re-established, in the 20th and 21st centuries
of the Christian era. People like Callodyn and Daniel of Haven, who
had been part of the Noahide community very early on, were figures
Noah had in mind to see if they too wanted to also make a permanent
home in Titea’s Dream. He doubted it, though, for Daniel. Daniel
would likely claim an abode if offered, but his angelic
responsibilities would keep him in the Realm of Eternity, presumably,
forever.
But he could only ask.
And,
once finally settled, he had a few ideas, a few new ideas, for things
to do and spend his time with. He was ready to be a cattle man again,
and the valley seemed suitable for this work. And, of all things,
another vineyard and a wine label. That much seemed certain as
well.
There would perhaps be other things he would
pursue – standard sporting and intellectual competitive pursuits,
both for the social aspects, and the pleasures gained from competing.
And he had it in mind, once he had finished the homestead, to build
an Ark out the back, which he had now done, funnily enough, a number
of times at various places. Something Abraham had suggested, once, as
a hobby he might want to pursue.
And, of course, the
regular routine of life, likely more children, and the making of
memories. Memories to recall on rainy days, lost in a world of his
own heart, thankful and forever grateful to the God of his fathers
for saving him and bringing him, in his mercies, into the gift of
eternity.
* * * * *
‘He is kicking
your arse, bro. Literally kicking your arse. I have been getting all
the dirt from Meludiel, and you haven’t got a hope in hell of her
choosing you.’
‘You don’t think so?’ queried Daniel,
looking down over the risk set at the game they were currently
occupied with.
‘He is stuffed,’ said Valandriel.
‘100%,’
responded Callodyn.
‘Come on,’ said Daniel. ‘Let’s
play. Leave Ariel’s heart to Ariel’s heart. She will do the right
thing in the end. I trust her.’
‘Are you sure trust will
be enough?’ queried Callodyn.
Daniel said nothing, but
stared down at the set. Would it be enough?
Ariel who
was at the doorway, but hadn’t yet come in, had heard that. She
backed away, back down the hall, and thought on her beloved. Daniel
had not bothered to do anything at all to win the contest. He hadn’t
even bothered to try. But he loved her. He loved her. But, in the
end, Ambriel had bothered. Ambriel had tried. Ambriel had shown
himself a gentleman as well, and Ariel felt, now, perhaps she wanted
to teach Daniel a lesson. A lesson about getting off his bloody arse
and bothering to show her some love. And so while she felt she might
verily be hardening her heart against him, perhaps that now was the
right thing to do.
* * * * *
‘So, are
you finally learning your lesson?’
‘Huh?’ responded
Jesus, to his twin Jenna’s inquiry. ‘What lesson?’
‘David.
He is teaching you sufficiently well, isn’t he? I am sure he knows
what he is talking about.’
Jesus almost laughed but looked
over at his wife, remembered who he was, and simply said ‘Not
yet.’
‘Oh,’ she responded. ‘Well, you will. You will
eventually get the point.’
‘And what exactly is the
point,’ he said, taking issue with her.
‘Well, your
wrong.’
He looked at her squarely. ‘As simple as that,
huh. I’m wrong.’
‘Exactly,’ she responded, looking
away for a moment, but then looking back at him with more
confidence.
‘So its Judaism, then, is it. The correct
religion. The correct way of life.’
‘For us. For Jacobs
descendants. Yes. It is our birth religion. It is what God commanded
us to follow. In the end, Jesus, you are simply a Jew who went off on
your own special mission. You can justify your followers and your
faith to the hilt, but it doesn’t change the ultimate simple fact
that it is all your own idea in the end anyway. God didn’t ordain
it – you did.’
He went silent. There was no real way he
could respond to that.
‘You say God doesn’t approve. You
say that. You don’t know for sure, though. Neither does
David.’
‘We know,’ she responded, but she was
cautious.
‘Really?’ he asked.
‘Yes,’ she
said.
‘Then I guess I beg to differ,’ he responded,
turning back to the documentary.
And he heard her say,
softly, ‘I guess so.’
* * * * *
David
sat with Bathsheba, at their breakfast table, looking at the
paper.
‘David?’
‘Yes, Bathsheba,’ he responded,
without looking up.
‘Have you tried complementing him?’
He
put down his paper. ‘Who?’
‘Well. Jesus.’
David
smiled. ‘Complementing him, Bathsheba?’
‘Complementing
him,’ she responded.
‘Well, how?’
‘Oh, I don’t
know. Tell him he has done a wonderful job building such a large
church. Emphasize that. How large it is. Men have egos.’
David
almost laughed. ‘Any other suggestions?’
‘Oh, tell him
that his gospel is truly enlightened.’
‘But that is what
we are actually arguing about. I can’t do that. I can’t.’
‘Give
some ground. Tell him if he was a rabbi and taught Judaism, so much
of his gospel would be truly enlightening to his
congregation.’
‘Subterfuge in other words. Sucker him into
joining us.’
‘Well what you’re doing isn’t working so
far.’
‘He is just stubborn. It’s just his pride. He is
the blessed Christ Child and that won’t die easily.’
‘Then
be creative. Find a way. Persuade him. If Christianity folded I would
expect Judaism and likely the Noahide faith would both grow
enormously.’
‘And then we only have to worry about
Islam.’
‘That comes second,’ she said. ‘Worry about
Jesus for now.’
‘Will do,’ he responded, picking up his
paper. But Bathsheba’s words were indeed on his mind.
*
* * * *
Daniel looked down at the roses. He had
decided, in the end, to bother. It was only roses, with an ‘I love
you’ card, but he figured he may as well. He came into the room,
looked at Ariel and smiled, and noticed Meludiel was at the table and
then, just then, noticing Ambriel. And next to Ambriel a pile of
roses and other flowers, against the wall, going up to the
ceiling.
Daniel looked at the roses, and Ambriel
smiled at him. He looked down at his paltry, pathetic offering and
looked at Ariel.
‘These are for you,’ he said
gruffly.
‘Oh, they are lovely,’ she responded, with only a
faint hint of ‘couldn’t-care-less’.
Ambriel spoke up.
‘Top effort mate. You have outdone yourself.’
‘Yeh,’
said Daniel, took another look at the pile of flowers, and left the
room. Why had he even bothered.
* * * * *
‘So,
what next, oh overseer of wisdom.’
‘A can of coke, I
think, and a burger from the canteen.’
‘Very funny,’
responded Michael to Gabriel’s sarcasm. ‘Seriously, you have done
well in the last few days. You have made some good plans and impacted
the realm. And, likely, for the better. The ideas were good –
strong, sound. Should improve things. The ideas of the capitals
having towers likely will give people a status symbol to focus on for
wealth concerns. Probably cool.’
‘Right,’ said Gabriel.
‘But you want more from me, do you?’
‘Not today. Not
this week. Not this year. Probably not even this decade. But, in time
Gabby, over this reign of yours as overseer, remember to make a mark
in general. Get things done, ideas established, works fulfilled,
which people remember you for. For it is an eternal reputation you
can build in your youth, which in a funny kind of way we are still
in. And with that rep, well.’
‘Well what?’ queried
Gabriel.
‘Well it helps. Whatever else it helps in life with
getting done the things you need or want done.’
‘Right,’
he said. ‘Ok. I’ll remember.’
‘Good,’ said Michael.
‘Now lets eat. I’m starved.’
As they exited the
office, Gabriel letting Cindradel know they were off for lunch,
Gabriel did indeed have Michael’s words of wisdom on his mind. In
time, yes, perhaps he did want to be remembered. Remembered for being
a wise, and caring overseer. An angel who could accomplish things.
Yes, that was worth it. That sort of reputation did seem appealing to
Gabriel, secondborn Seraphim, of the realm of eternity.
*
* * * *
King David was sitting with his son, Solomon,
on the back verandah of his abode. Solomon was quiet, today, and
seemed to have something on his mind.
‘Is there something
bothering you?’ David asked gently.
‘Not really bothering
me, dad. Not bothering. I am just thinking over the emails I have
been getting from Abraham and Jacob. You are getting them also,
aren’t you?’
‘Yes,’ he responded.
They
sat there for a while, looking out on the suburban surroundings.
David spoke again shortly. ‘I don’t know if I want to live way
out there. In Zanadra. Sure, it looks great. But I have a place I
think I want to ultimately end up. I can probably afford it now if I
had to, but I have been delaying the purchase.’
‘Which
is?’ asked Solomon.
‘Zaphon tower. The centre. Like
Gabriel said, it is the ultimate status symbol to many. And, for many
it is the heart of the world – the ultimate. I think it is where I
want to be. But, also, because I like the place. I like the feel of
the place, the spirit of the place. It feels…. I don’t know. It
feels – like home.’
‘So you won’t be going to
Zanadra?’
‘Probably not in the end. I have talked with
Bathsheba for some time. We are in agreement. We like Zaphon tower.
It appeals to us. I think it is where we belong.’
‘Then
you have thrown a hammer in the works,’ said Solomon.
‘Which
is?’ queried his father.
‘Were I am supposed to end up,’
the teacher of wisdom replied.
‘Oh,’ said David.
*
* * * *
‘You shouldn’t feel bad, Danny. Ambriel is
just working harder at the moment. Perhaps take a leaf out of his
book – think big.’
‘Think big?’ he responded to his
twin.
‘Yes. Think big. It is very impressive.’
‘Right,’
he said. ‘I guess I’ll do that.’
He munched away on his
muesli, thinking that over. What could he possibly do which Ambriel
hasn’t already done? What idea could captivate the heart of Ariel
and ensure his unlikely victory? What plan would give him the right
to watch Ambriel tossed into a pile of horse shit.
He
finished his breakfast, disappeared off to his room, and sat there,
at his PC, thinking. ‘Something big. Something big. Something big.’
And then he had an idea, typed it down, and smiled. Yes. Brilliant.
Let Ambriel see if he could match that one.
* * * *
*
‘Wassup,’ said Metatron to his theophanic
father.
‘Life,’ responded the theophany, one of his
standard joke responses to the question.
‘You are as witty
as ever,’ replied Metatron, sitting down next to him on the porch
of home, beer in hand.
They sat there, staring out at
the aurora, not saying much. Inside, Metatron had a bedroom in ‘Home’
were he spent, funnily enough, most of his time. He had 4 bookcases
full of hardback books, as he rarely collected the paperback kind and
didn’t bother with eBook readers very much, such had been his age
and traditional ways. And, most of the time, he was on his bed,
reading a book, sipping on a beer, munching away, often with the
stereo on, her his universal channel receiving television playing
away. God had those rights, fortunately, and Metatron enjoyed the
luxury of receiving, if he wanted to, every known channel known to –
well – everyone. And that was saying something. Usually he watched
a lot of British shows, and enjoyed ‘Dr Who’ and ‘Minder’ a
lot, as well as ‘Blakes 7’ and the latter British Sci Fi epics.
He liked his science fiction.
He did write –
occasionally – sitting at his PC, typing away at another novel. But
these usually want to either Logos or Memra to read, and the
Theophany as well from time to time. He wasn’t published anywhere,
but didn’t need to be. Didn’t really want to be apparently. No
point. It was not the glory of riches that Metatron had chosen for
his eternal reward – it was the glory of his father, and eldest
brother and sister, and their often company which gave him what he
needed.
They’d had adventures over their sojourn –
many of them – and Metatron was always perfectly well and content
at ‘Home’ the home of homes to many, anyway. Were God was.
He
did other things, and they still played chess avidly, but it was
usually a simple life, in a rim like paddock world, with a barn, a
homestead, a chook house, a couple of sheds, and not much else.
It
was, in most respects, an Americana place they found themselves in –
very similar to Clark Kent’s home in the original Superman movie,
which they watched together a lot. But that had been the spirit God
had chosen for home, and didn’t seem to want to budge from it. It
suited Metatron well enough.
Out at the edges, near
the aurora, you felt like you were in Antarctica. It could get really
cold right near the aurora, and the spirit felt very much like the
great earth southern continent. That, also, was what God had
wanted.
It was a strange world – a surreal world –
but it was home to Metatron, and he didn’t really think he would
ever really find anywhere else to lay his head.
* * *
* *
‘Ok. Open them.’
Ariel looked out, and
didn’t notice anything immediately. And then she saw it – out on
the street – an enormous semi trailer with a huge ‘I Love You
Ariel’ written on the side of it in bold red and green
letters.
‘Much better,’ she said to Daniel, who was
grinning.
‘You wanted big,’ he responded.
She
walked down the path, looked at it more closely, and turned to him.
‘But that is just the beginning, right. You never know what Ambriel
will do next.’
‘No,’ he said. She smiled at him and, as
he gazed at her, he noticed some paper falling down from the sky near
her. She picked it up, looked at it and laughed.
‘What is
it?’ queried Daniel. Then, suddenly, as if in response to his
query, hundreds of such pieces of paper suddenly started floating
down from the skies, filling the yard and the street. Daniel looked
up and could see a plane up in the sky and thousands, if not millions
of pieces of paper floating downwards, right towards Danielphon. He
bent down, picked one of them up, and read: ‘Ariel, queen of my
heart, queen of the world. Yours forever, Ambriel’ in big golden
letters.
‘Oh, Amby Wamby,’ said Ariel and, just then, he
appeared at the front gate, came inside, and smiled at them both.
Ariel hugged him. ‘You are wonderful, Messiah of God. Truly
wonderful.’ And, as Ariel hugged Ambriel, he winked at
Daniel.
Daniel groaned all that afternoon. He was
defeated, and he knew it. May as well accept his fate. May as
well.
* * * * *
They were at Noah’s
rented house, the 4 of them, the patriarchs, fathers of the covenant.
Noah, Abraham, Isaac and Jacob. Perhaps Adam could have been there,
but no worry.
‘So, this is home,’ said
Abraham.
‘We have had homes before. New homes. It is nothing
completely new to us.’
‘But it is to be different to the
other ones, Noah. We never rested eternally before.’
Noah
looked at him, thinking on that. ‘Our ETERNAL resting place? MMmm.
Maybe.’
‘What is that supposed to mean?’ inquired
Jacob.
‘Oh, I don’t know. Things the theophany spoke to me
once. Subtle words he uses, some times. Subtle allusions to
things.’
‘What kind of things?’ asked
Abraham.
‘Beginnings and Endings. Endings and Beginnings.
Starting all over again, when all is said and done.
They
sat there for a few moments, on the lounges, when Isaac spoke up.
‘WHAT will end? Our lives?’
‘Sort of, I think. But more
than that. Life, for a while. All life – everywhere.’
‘And
then what?’ asked Abraham.
Noah looked at his children,
apparently, if I read his plans right, a rest. A very, very, long
rest. In the heart of God, for an unspecified time at the moment, but
very long, for God to rest as well, with no more concerns, no more
worries, not having to watch over and put his heart on the line for
his children.
‘And then?’ asked Jacob.
‘We
start again,’ said Noah. ‘And with a new beginning to it all. A
new world, a new life, a fresh start.’
‘Oh,’ said
Abraham.
‘Shadows of our past lives will be in us,
and there will be hidden memories in our minds, in our dreams,
speaking to us of what has been. But nothing more.’
‘And
he said all this?’ queried Abraham.
‘Not in so many words,
son. But in the way he speaks over a long time, and suggests things
and ideas. Well….. Well I have pieced it all together over a while.
A plan of his. His plan of life. So we may go on, refreshed, renewed,
with a fresh start each time. Like the dawning of a brand new day
after a good nights sleep.
‘Then what does the next
world hold for us?’ queried Isaac.
‘Who knows,’
said Noah. ‘Who knows.’
* * * * *
‘You’re
not rubbing it in are you?’
‘Would I do that Mel?’
Ambriel replied to his twin.
‘No. Not normally. But I have
been around with you and him recently, in all this debacle. And
sometimes - sometimes you have been a little less than
gracious.’
‘It is all in the spirit of the game,’
responded Ambriel, defending himself.
‘Perhaps,’ she said.
‘But gloating is far from gentlemanlike.’
‘Oh, I think
he has done enough of that in the past, don’t you think.’
‘And
you have usually turned the other cheek,’ she responded.
‘Yes,’
he said. ‘Usually. But I am only human, also, dear sister.’
‘I
guess so,’ she replied.
‘Look, if he loses, I will
try to be as gracious as possible. And if he is dumped in shit I
won’t laugh and will just be friendly and all, ok.’
‘Good,’
she said. ‘Remember. You promise me that. Don’t embarrass him. I
love him, ok.’
‘I know,’ he replied. ‘I know.’
*
* * * *
There they were, the four of them, sitting at
a café near David’s place, chatting away, ready for a
debate.
‘So, Daniel,’ began David. ‘Why did you
leave Christianity in the end, anyway?’
Daniel looked
nervously at Jesus. What could he say?
‘It wasn’t for me,
Dave,’ he started. ‘There were many reasons. Not finding a church
which taught what I thought was the correct doctrine of Christianity
was a major hurdle, but that wouldn’t have been it in the end. Not
the compelling reason.’
‘And what was the compelling
reason?’ asked David, looking at a very calm looking Jesus of
Nazareth.
Daniel didn’t answer. He sat there, sipping on his
latte, looking at David, but said nothing. He wouldn’t. He wouldn’t
do that to Jesus – embarrass him like that. He was too fond of the
guy.
David seemed a bit disappointed at the silence, so moved
on. ‘Callodyn. You never really had much to do with Christianity
anyway. Do you have a story to tell.’
Callodyn was a little
more forthcoming. ‘Honestly, David. There are a lot of reasons, but
Noahide faith worked for me in the end. It made the most historical
sense, and Christianity and its early ideas about God really put me
off. I’m a Unitarian, like Daniel, even if he won’t say so. The
early church focused way to much on our brother here. Deifying him –
that was too off-putting. After all of that hoo hah over the Trinity
and Oneness and trying to work all that out, well…’ He left off
and said no more.
‘Well what,’ said David.
‘Well
there was little point in trying to be a Christian. Noahide faith was
just too appealing and made too much sense to ignore. It seemed to
come up trumps when I asked the major questions, like my brother,
even though he won’t speak of it in present company.
David
nodded. He didn’t exactly get the kind of answers he was looking
for from either of them. Still, no worries. He would take what he
could get from the conversation.
‘Not everyone
believes in Christianity then, I guess,’ he said to nobody in
particular. Jesus said nothing, but smiled. David was playing a long
thought out game with him. The problem for David, though, was that
Jesus saw every move.
David looked at Jesus. ‘We
have lived a long time doing our separate thing. Is that what you
want? Us to be eternally separate.’
Jesus looked at him in
response, looked at his honest eyes, and looked downwards, into his
drink.
‘I don’t really know if I can answer that for sure,
David. I am happy enough. I have a loyal Christian congregation which
follows me and my ways. In a sense, I left Judaism a long time ago.
It would be a long way back. Not really sure if I even want to make
that journey, in the end. Not really sure if I could really ever
contemplate the teaching of the religion seriously enough to even
consider that. I am what I am, Dave. I am what I am.’
David
thought about saying ‘So I am wasting my time then,’ but
refrained. In the end, was it he who was now trying to soul win
Jesus? Should he be doing that? Should he be interfering with another
person’s beliefs and way of life? Should he care?
‘So
be it,’ said David. ‘If that is what you have chosen. But the
door is open, Yeshua. If you ever need someone to talk to, to
consider our families way, the door is open. But you will have to
walk through it.’
‘Understood,’ responded the man from
Nazareth, and Daniel nodded grimly. The only real solution had
eventuated. Such was life, in the end. Such was life.
Chapter
Thirteen
Andrew pulled up in the driveway, ejected the
CD from the car stereo player, as he wanted to continue listening to
it inside, put the key into the carport doorway to the flat, and came
inside and slumped onto the couch. He was tired today but managed to
put the new Def Leppard CD into the drive, hit play, and as the PC
stereo blasted out track 1 again, he was lost in the world of rock
and roll – his current salvation.
Bianca showed up
not much later with a bag of groceries, including a hot lasagne from
the takeaway which was to be their dinner. Andrew barely said
hello.
‘Tired, honey?’ she queried.
‘Exhausted,’
he replied.
‘Lasagne for dinner.’
‘Cool,’ he
replied.
He managed to get to the table, began eating
his food, drank some of the juice and noticed Bianca was looking at
him. ‘Uh, the food is great, hon.’
She said nothing,
nodded slightly, and continued staring at him as he ate.
‘What?’
he said, putting down his fork, frustrated, which Bianca took as an
affirmation for her turn to speak.
‘Jessica.’
‘Jessica
what?’
‘Deal with it. Ok. Finally. Deal with it.’
He
looked at her and got the point. ‘Ok, ok. I’ll deal with
it.’
‘Finally?’
‘Finally,’ he responded, and
went back to his lasagne, grumbling under his breath.
*
* * * *
‘Mummy. Will we be living in Zanadra
forever?’
Ruth looked down at her son, Dominic, not yet
knowing how to answer the question. ‘Would they be living in
Zanadra forever?’ Boaz and her had already gotten the invitation
from both Noah and Abraham, and Jacob had confirmed to them both that
it was also his essential idea to settle there. But for Ruth and
Boaz?
‘I don’t know, Dommy. Maybe, ok. We will have to
talk about it.’
‘What is wrong with Televon? Isn’t that
home?’
Ruth looked down at him nodding. What could she say,
really.
Boaz, who had been standing apart, with a
digital camera, taking shots of the valley, came back to the two of
them and smiled. ‘Well. It’s a great looking valley. The air is
nice and crisp, always a good thing. Would be good for our health,
living here.’
‘Yes,’ replied Ruth.
They
stared out at the valley for a while longer and then Boaz indicated
it was time to return to Noah’s house.
As they drove
along Ruth spoke up. ‘This isn’t set in stone yet, is it?’
‘The
move, you mean?’
‘Yes.’
Boaz went silent for a
while. ‘No. Not yet. I like the idea, initially, but will have to
give it a lot of thought.’ He turned to her. ‘But if you don’t
think it is a good idea also, we won’t make the move. If Televon
his home, so be it. Sure, I am excited at the moment about the place
– it looks great – but we will carefully consider this.’
‘Good,’
she responded, looking out the window of the car.
* *
* * *
Andrew was at Jessica’s place. He had come
over, after work, and she was serving him a beer as he sat on the
lounge.
‘Look, Jess. There is something I need to talk to
you about. It is pretty serious.’
‘I love you, you know,
Andrew. I love you.’
He looked at her. How could he say what
he was going to say now? He tried, anyway.
‘Look. I just
don’t think we can see each other anymore, ok. I am going to be wed
to Bianca eventually.’
She sat down next to him and touched
his knee.
‘So it is not going to work out ok,’ he
continued.
She moved her hand up his leg, up to his crotch,
and rested it there.
‘So it’s over, ok. I know you must be
devastated, but that is just the way it is.’
She put her
hand over his mouth, and tugged on his pants. She freed his manhood
and said to him. ‘Ok. Its over. I love you.’ And she took his
cock, which had hardened up, onto her tongue and started sucking and
sucking until he exploded cum into her mouth.
She looked at
him, opened her mouth, and swallowed the lot in front of him.
‘Oh
fuck,’ he said.
‘That’s next,’ she responded.
*
* * * *
‘I’m just not sure if I want to make the
move, Boaz. I am settled, now, on Televon. Paradision is home. I have
sort of gotten used to the idea of living there forever.’
‘I
know what you are saying, Ruthie. I do know. Well, we will have to
give the bad news to Abraham and Noah then.’
Ruth went
silent. She said she was not sure, but Boaz had taken that as a
refusal.
‘Look, I didn’t say absolutely no. I didn’t
mean to give that impression. I just wanted to state that I am at
home on Televon. A move, now, would have to be for all the right
reasons.’
He looked at her, looked upwards in frustration,
and nodded.
‘Then we need more time to think it
over, then?’
‘I guess so,’ she responded. ‘After all,
If Noah and Abraham and Jacob are there, and others, it may be in our
best interests in the end. It is a difficult decision.’
‘One
which we will not take lightly,’ he responded.
‘Then we
need time. I mean, there is no rush, is there?’
‘Not
really. But if we are going to make the move, being early with the
rest of them may be in our best interests.’
‘I know,’
she said. ‘But we need time.’
‘Yes.’
*
* * * *
‘So you love me do you, Nathan Yeltsin.’
‘I
wouldn’t say it if I didn’t mean it, Cheryl. You should know me
by now.’
She looked away, picked up her cappuccino, took a
sip, and stared out at the street. He loved her. What more did she
need to here.
‘And what is the next step after that?’ she
asked, carefully.
‘Mmm. Yes. I think I know what you are
saying. I will have to think that over, though. It could take a
while.’
‘So you are not completely committed, in other
words?’
‘I do love you. I meant that.’
‘But
nothing more.’
‘Do you need something more?’
She
sipped on her cappuccino. ‘That is a very good question, Nathan
Yeltsin. That is a very good question.
* * * *
*
‘Time is running out, Danny Boy,’ said Ambriel.
‘You don’t have any big surprises left do you?’
‘Uh,
not that I am aware of,’ responded Daniel in the game of Bridge the
four of them were playing.
‘Then I should be fine,’
responded Ambriel.
Meludiel spoke up. ‘Pride comes before
the fall, Ambriel, dear brother.’
‘Yes, I know,’ he
responded, looking directly at Ariel, who was looking at her cards.
‘Still, perhaps I am not the one who has been guilty of such pride
for a while. Perhaps I am the humble one.’
Meludiel looked
at Ambriel’s face as he was staring at Daniel’s, but said
nothing. There was nothing to say.
‘Well, are you
going to bid, Ambriel?’ inquired Daniel.
‘I pass,’ he
responded.
‘1 Heart,’ said Ariel.
‘But it is a
very big one,’ said Ambriel instantly, which made Ariel blush.
Ambriel gave Daniel a look as if to belie his advantage with
her.
Ariel looked at Meludiel. ‘Are you going to
bid?’
‘I’ll pass,’ responded Meludiel.
Daniel
passed as well.
‘Then I guess the bid is mine,’ said
Ariel.
‘Because you are all heart,’ said Ambriel.
‘Oh,
Ambriel, you do lay it on thick,’ said Ariel smiling.
‘Tell
me about it,’ said Daniel under his breath.
* * * *
*
‘You what!’
‘I slept with her.’
Bianca
just looked at him stunned for a few moments. She didn’t really
know what to say. But eventually she found her words.
‘Out!
Get the fuck out. Go over to your whore if you need somewere to stay.
I don’t give a fuck. Get the hell out.’
And he was gone as
quickly as that.
In fact, he went over to Jessica’s.
And she took him in, hugged him, and they slept together that night,
but there was no sex. He was still convicted. In the morning he
looked at Jess honestly. ‘I love her, ok Jess. I don’t know what
the future holds between you and me, but I love Bianca. I am going
over there after work to talk to her. Hopefully she has calmed
down.
Jessica clutched onto his arm. ‘Perhaps you should get
the point about who you belong to, Andrew. Perhaps you should get the
point.’
He looked at her, but said nothing.
*
* * * *
‘I have heard of your little wager, Daniel.
Can you lose with humility?’
‘What – are you saying I am
going to lose?’
‘No. Just preparing you for the worst,’
responded the Theophany of God.
‘Oh,’ he said, but that
didn’t cheer him up anyway. ‘Ambriel has come on so thick since
we entered into the agreement. I mean, I didn’t really care at
first, but when I bothered to give a damn he trounced me with big
moves. I don’t think I have a chance with her.’
‘Well,
if you lose the battle, remember the war,’ responded the Theophany.
‘There is always tomorrow.’
‘Yes. One covered with
shit,’ responded Daniel sarcastically, which brought a grin to the
Theophany’s face.
‘Take it with humble pride. You’ll
bounce back son. I have faith in you.’
‘I hope so,’ he
responded. ‘I hope so.’
* * * * *
‘He
loves you, hey,’ said Bill.
‘That’s what he says,’
responded Cheryl. The two of them were on the back verandah of her
apartment, were they had come into the habit of having conversations
together.
‘Has he asked you to marry you?’
‘Not
yet,’ she responded. ‘I think he is nervous about that. Or,
perhaps, he doesn’t want to yet. Maybe never either. He might have
views on that kind of thing.’
‘Oh,’ he responded. ‘Well,
if you love him, I guess you will wait for him to make up his
mind.’
‘I guess,’ she responded. She looked at her new
friend. ‘What about you? Any loves in your life?’
‘There
have been a few things going on over the years. But I haven’t
married yet. No children. I’ll get around to it. I’m in no
rush.’
‘A sensible attitude, Bill Smith. Very
patient.’
‘You have to be when waiting for the right one,’
he responded.
‘Tell me about it,’ she responded and
sighed.
* * * * *
It had been a week.
They had been enjoying Noah’s hospitality and feeling at home in
Zanadra. But, in the end, Ruth came around to Boaz early one morning,
looked at him and said ‘Paradision is home,’ and he had
nodded.
‘Sorry, Noah. I mean, it is an awesome
offer, and we were excited to start with, but we have given it
thought and, I am afraid, no. We won’t be moving.’
Noah
was caught off guard by that and said ‘Well, Can I know why?’
Ruth
responded. ‘We have been on Televon a long time now, Noah. It has
been home ever since we have reached the heavenlies. We don’t
really like the idea of moving, even if it is to a place which
appears to be the final home for you and Abraham and so on. It really
is tempting, but no. We like Paradision. We always have. And we have
roots there now – quite deep roots. We don’t want to disturb that
– we don’t want to leave a gaping hole in a community which has
come to know us and rely on us in many ways. So as attractive as the
offer is, no, we won’t be moving.’
Noah sighed. ‘Yes, I
understand. It was almost the same for me with Rainbow Valley. I had
gotten so used to the place that I had felt it was the final port of
call. But Titea’s Dream has been decided on, and we will have to
leave it at that. Remember, you can visit as often as you like. We
will always have room for you both.’
‘Thank you,’ said
Boaz, and Ruth hugged him.
Later that week, on the
journey home, Ruth said to him ‘I think we are doing the right
thing, in the end. Despite them being very close family, we already
have a family on Televon. We are established, Boaz. It would be wrong
in many ways to interfere with that.’
‘I know,’ he
responded, and hugged her.
* * * * *
‘Sorry
doesn’t cut it babe. I just don’t. When you have told Jessica it
is over, and you mean it, we can be together again. But not until
then. And if you can’t..’ she left off speaking, looking at him
with tears in her eyes. ‘And if you can’t, then you belong with
her in the end anyway,’ and she shut the door in his face.
He
took the car up to the local lookout, looked out over the city and
mulled it over. What did Andrew want in the end anyway? What did he
really want? Did he even want to be with Bianca, or was Jessica on
his heart? Or was he so caught up between the two of them that he
didn’t have time to think straight on the issue.
He
kicked the dirt in front of his car and stared out at the lights of
the city. He thought on his father, Daniel, who had long had
emotional struggles with Ambriel and Meludiel, as he really loved
Meludiel, but was now faithful to his own twin. He could imagine his
father’s heart had struggled with similar questions over the years.
But it was different for Andrew – he didn’t have a twin. He would
never have a twin. He couldn’t rely on a God-designed match to
settle on his heart, declare her unfailing love and that there was no
other, and so be it forever. He didn’t have that.
But
he did have two girls, both who expressed their love for him, both
who wanted him just to themselves, and both of which he found himself
loving quite deeply. But when push came to shove, would it indeed be
Bianca who he would remain faithful to, or would he go back to his
old love. His heart, in his current turmoil, just couldn’t
decide.
He looked out over the city and wondered if
any other hearts were going through such a similar dilemma.
*
* * * *
‘You know, Daniel. You really have put in a
good effort. Really. Ariel must be solidly
impressed.’
‘Shaddup.’
‘I mean, the big sign on
that truck was amazing. Must have been the most spectacular thing
that happened that day.’
‘Shaddup,’ said Daniel to
Ambriel again.
‘And those flowers. Amazing,’ responded
David Rothchild.
‘So you think you are home and hosed, do
you, oh messiah of glory?’
‘Glad to see you are finally
acknowledging me as the messiah. You don’t normally.’
‘I
defend God’s right to bad judgment in choosing you also. He is only
human in the end.’
Ambriel liked that jibe. ‘Perhaps he
should have chosen you as messiah, then?’
‘If he had any
kind of good sense, he would.’
‘Ok,’ said David. ‘Daniel
Daly – Messiah of Glory. Oh, how about ‘The Noahide Messiah?’
Saviour of the Noahides.’
‘Sounds good,’ responded
Daniel.
‘With wisdom truly outstanding. He knows ALL they
say. Even more than Jesus himself.’
‘True,’ acknowledged
Daniel.
‘A master of love and mercy.’
‘Hey, I put
up with you don’t I.’
‘Yes. Daniel Rothchild – Messiah
of Glory.’
‘Were do I apply?’ responded Daniel.
‘Oh,
Satan has an opening.’
‘Well, if you can’t beat
them.’
And Ambriel smiled.
* * * *
*
Daniel was looking dejected. Sitting there, in front
of Ariel, he looked truly pathetic. He was sure, oh so sure, Ariel
would choose Amby Wamby, and he was on his last legs.
‘Look,
Danny. Keep the faith, ok. If you love me, in the end, that is
enough. Whatever else happens, that is enough.’
‘But you
will choose Ambriel.’
‘But who do I stay with
regardless?’
And he was somewhat consoled by that
statement.
* * * * *
They were home,
back in Paradision, with Margaret over for afternoon tea.
‘We
were tempted,’ began Ruth. ‘Really, living in the same valley as
Noah, Abraham and Jacob would perhaps seem ideal to many in the
family. But, well. Well Televon is home now, Margaret. We don’t
feel we can leave her in the end. We have too many roots here.’
‘It
is always important to find a place called home,’ responded
Margaret. ‘I searched for a long time, once. Went through a number
of marriages, always trying to fill a home which only God could fill.
And when my husband left me on the farm, I had thought that was the
end of the road in many ways. But, one night, God crept in, reminded
me he was there, and suggested I give him a try. And he has not
failed me yet.’
‘That is a beautiful story,’ responded
Ruth.
‘And so I have my home – in my heart, in a sense.
But in the heart of God more importantly. And I will never, never,
ever leave him. Never.’
Ruth grasped the hand of her friend
in solidarity and said ‘Amen.’
* * * * *
Yet,
despite his love for Bianca, it seemed to be Jessica’s persistence
which won him. Her devotion, her affection, her desire for him. These
seemed to the things which Andrew, in his heart, could not
fight.
And so, while he loved Bianca, and wanted to be
with her, he stayed with Jessica for a while. And after a week he
seemed to be thinking he was home again, living at Jess’, his
apparent new home. He did not really know how long the situation
would last, but he had resolved one issue. He couldn’t let Jessica
go, now, no matter how much Bianca protested. He loved Jess to and,
while he wasn’t the kind of guy who would normally go for two
wives, it had crossed his mind. But he was certain neither of the
girls would approve of such an idea – it was still not the custom
of the realm to operate like that.
As the week turned
over, and after Jess was voracious for him each night sexually,
Andrew was starting to believe he wouldn’t see Bianca again for a
long time. And then, late one night, she rang him, told him to come
around in the morning, and that she had calmed down somewhat. They
would try to resolve the situation – like adults – and whatever
the result, then so be it.
* * * * *
‘This
is Bill.’ Nathan shook Bill’s hand, and the three of them sat
down at Cheryl’s kitchen table, over coffee.
‘So, Bill,’
began Nathan. ‘You’re a janitor.’
‘It’s a living,’
responded Mr Smith.
Nathan looked at Bill, and looked at
Cheryl looking at him.
‘Do you have dreams, Bill?’
inquired Nathan.
‘What do you mean?’
‘Dreams.
Ambitions. Getting somewhere in life. I myself pursued them from
quite a young age, and have done extraordinarily well for
myself.’
‘Oh, I have plans. I’ll get to them in time,’
responded Mr Smith.
‘I see,’ said Nathan, again looking at
Cheryl.
‘Bill’s main plan is to pay of his place,’
said Cheryl. ‘Once he has done that things like shares and other
investments look like a reality. We all have to start somewhere,
after all.’
‘That we do,’ agreed Nathan.
‘What
do you do?’ asked Bill, looking at Nathan directly.
‘Oh, a
business man. Various investments. Various companies. I am a lot
older than you, after all, so I have had a lot more time to achieve
success. But we are never too young to have dreams and
ambitions.’
‘No we are not,’ said Cheryl.
‘Of
course, you know how successful Cheryl has been. It would take a mean
man to match her greatness.’
‘Probably,’ responded Bill,
but he wasn’t biting. Whatever angle Mr Yeltsin was aiming at,
there was no point in playing his game. After all, Cheryl WAS his
girlfriend. Bill was only an acquaintance. That was all it was,
wasn’t it?
‘Well, I probably should get back to
work,’ said Bill.
‘So soon,’ said Cheryl. ‘I thought
it was your lunch break.’
‘It is. Sorry. But there are
things I need to get to,’ he said, looking right at Nathan.
‘Oh,
ok,’ said Cheryl.
Bill excused himself and left
Cheryl perplexed, but Nathan looking relieved. He hadn’t liked the
way Cheryl looked at Bill. He hadn’t liked that at all.
‘Bill’s
a wonderful guy, isn’t he Nathan?’ asked Cheryl.
‘Sure.
Wonderful,’ said a very jealous looking Nathan Yeltsin.
*
* * * *
‘So, have you made your mind up,
sweetie?’
Ariel didn’t respond to Daniel’s question, but
just continued buttering her toast.
‘Could you pass the
honey,’ she said to him.
‘Anything for a honey such as
yourself.’
‘Good grief,’ Ariel thought to herself. After
all of Ambriel’s attention, Daniel’s words were trite
indeed.
‘Remember, I love you,’ said Daniel.
‘Good
to know,’ responded Ariel.
‘And you wouldn’t want to
embarrass anyone you love, would you?’
She took a bit of her
toast, looked at him, and smiled, but said nothing.
‘Especially
your own dear, dear, beloved twin. I mean after all that we have been
through together for so, so long. I mean, how could you possibly ever
choose otherwise.’
Ariel burped a little, said ‘excuse
me,’ and took a sip of her orange juice. She looked directly at
Daniel.
‘Yes. I have made up my mind. And it is far too late
either way for your current fascinations. Whatever will be will be,
and you will simply have to accept my judgement on the day. But don’t
worry, Danny. You ARE my twin after all. Aren’t you.’
‘Shazbat,’
he said, under his breath.
Ariel just smiled, and continued
eating her toast.
* * * * *
‘So, have
you come to your judgement?’ asked the Theophany.
‘I am
definitely going to teach him a lesson. A lesson he sorely deserves,’
responded Ariel.
‘For all his pride?’ inquired
God.
‘Yes,’ she said firmly.
‘And the other
one?’
‘Well justice must have its day,’ she said, with
an odd look on her face.
‘I guess so,’ responded God. ‘I
guess so.’
* * * * *
Andrew, Jessica
and Bianca, were all in Andrews flat, seated around the kitchen
table, drinking coffee. It had been casual conversation so far, as
they were edging around the topic, but they all knew it had to be
aired. A decision had to be made. Andrew would have to make a
decision.
And then Bianca spoke.
‘Well,
I have a suggestion. I don’t know if it is a good idea, or a bad
idea. But it is the only idea I have been able to come up with to
solve our situation. It is the only thing I think which gives me and,
I suppose, Jessica, a fair enough chance to resolve the problem –
forever.’
Andrew and Jessica looked at her, both of them
anxious to see what kind of solution she had in mind.
‘Obviously,’
began Bianca, ‘Neither of us is prepared to share you with the
other on an ongoing basis. If you had any sort of crazy ideas of a
wife and a mistress or two wives or whatever, then you can forget
about it Andy boy.’
Andrew looked a little embarrassed, but
said nothing.
‘So it is going to have to be one or the
other. You are going to have to make up your mind.’
‘Agreed,’
said Jessica.
Bianca paused and took a sip of coffee, before
continuing. ‘So I suggest this. A contest, of sorts. Well, that is
perhaps not the right word for it, but an arrangement. A duel of
hearts. What I suggest is that either I or Jessica first spend 6
months totally alone together with yourself, without the other girl’s
interference. In that 6 months the girl is supposed to show her love
for you. And then, after the 6 months is completed, you spend another
6 months with the other girl. And then, having spent 6 months with
each, you should be ready to make up your mind, totally, once and for
all, who you choose. Is that an acceptable solution.’
Jessica
looked at Bianca steadily, saw no deceit in her face and spoke up.
‘Who goes first?’
‘Does that matter?’ asked Bianca
honestly.
‘I guess not,’ responded Jessica. ‘Ok. Let
Andrew choose who goes first.’
Andrew, looking worried,
pulled out a coin. ‘Heads, Bianca goes first, Tails, Jessica goes
first. Yes, it is a good enough idea to me.’ He showed them both
the two sides of the coin, tossed it in the air, and it landed on
Tails. ‘So Jessica has the first 6 months, and Bianca has the
second 6 months. You both agree.’
‘I agree,’ said
Bianca.
‘Yes. That should be fine,’ responded
Jessica.
‘And the decision has to be final and absolute,’
responded Bianca, looking directly at Jessica.
‘Agreed,’
said Jessica.
Andrew, caught between the warring hens, sighed.
Judgement day would come soon enough. In the end, he would have to
let his heart decide. There would be no escaping that fateful choice.
But, such was life. Such was life.
* * * * *
‘I
guess it wasn’t meant to be in the end, Titea. Ruth and Boaz coming
along.’
‘I think they know where they belong, Noah. I
think they already knew. My dream is not for everyone, in the end,
but for those to whom God brings here. But with Abraham and Isaac and
Jacob, and some of the others indicating a positive response, it will
be home forever. I am sure of that.’
‘Of course,’ he
responded, holding her close. ‘You are always right,’ and he
kissed her.
Later on that day he was looking over
plans for the main ranch house of Titea’s Dream. They were initial
plans he had drawn up with a local architect, room enough for a large
family and all the basics they would need. Another home, another
dream in a way, but Noah was of mind to now build with Stone and for
each subsequent rebuild to be of stone, for long life. And he didn’t
really want to change the design at all each time, rather, a
permanent feel for the homestead of Titea’s Dream. A permanent,
unchanging, reality of the Kingdom of Noah, one in which people would
find, in time, familiarity and, more than that – a home.
Noah
welcomed many of the Noahide families from time to time for
visitation, as they were the people who had taken his name and
covenantal faith, and walked with God according to his own
traditions. And while he had so much offspring anyway, the Noahides
were particularly close to him. And, in that respect, he wanted
‘Titea’s Dream’ to become something of a spiritual home for the
Noahide community. And, in that respect, with Abraham and Isaac and
Jacob also on board, a spiritual home for Israel as well. He had it
in mind to build his Ark many times, and to have it up behind the
house, on the hill, with a small zoo of various animals for people to
look at and be reminded of God’s miracle working ways. It was to be
home – forever home – and Zanadra seemed as good as place as any
for his final destination.
And, forever resting, he
wondered. He wondered of the distant future when, perhaps, he would
rest again, and find yet another life, yet another beginning waiting
upon him. But even then, in his heart, he felt that Zanadra would be
an inevitable part of his destiny. That his choice of eternal repose
would, in a sense, be just that – a place of eternal rest.
He
looked over the plans one last time and, hearing Titea’s call to
dinner, he came into the kitchen, sat down at the table, began his
roast chicken meal, and thanked God in his heart for finding his
final peace and consolation.
* * * * *
‘So
Zanadra,’ said Sarah. ‘It is definitely settled?’
‘Yes,’
responded Abraham. ‘I know that Ruth and Boaz must find their own
home, as each of us must in the eternal, but Zanadra – well, I like
it. It suits me. The climate is ideal for Abraham and his family, so
we will settle here forever.’
‘Good,’ said Sarah. ‘Now,
Andorran. We will have to learn it quite thoroughly, and we should
probably be looking to make firm contacts with the community.’
‘That
will come in time,’ responded Abraham. ‘They have welcomed us so
far, so I don’t anticipate too many problems. They seem quite
honoured to have Noah amongst them from all reports.’
‘Which
is good news for us. But it can always be difficult starting in a new
place, with new people.’
‘Sometimes I think I was born to
wander like that, though, Sarah. The Lord has called me before to a
new place. It must be the wisdom of God on the issue.’
‘Or
he likes to keep things fresh and interesting,’ she said as an
opposing view.
‘Perhaps. Perhaps. But I think, this time,
our move is complete. That it is forever and ever, as they put it.
And that we will not have to move again.’
‘Then Zanadra
his home,’ she said resolutely.
‘Yes, Zanadra is home,’
he confirmed.
* * * * *
The theophany
was sitting at home, out on the porch, staring at the aurora. Homes
had been found – eternal homes. Homes of permanent rest. That was
always a good thing. Always a good thing to resolve. Still, there was
still another issue on his mind – an issue which was coming to a
head very soon. Daniel and Ambriel. Who indeed would Ariel choose?
Who would be the victor, and who would taste shame? And as the
theophany puzzled on the machinations of destiny, a little spirit
called Ariel spoke to his heart and said ‘Just you wait and see.’
Chapter
Fourteen
Jesus looked down at the board. The game was
getting interesting. King David obviously knew how to play, while
Jesus prided himself on his expertise at chess. The result could be
interesting.
David moved his bishop up diagonally in a
threatening manner.
‘Of course,’ began David,
‘when all is said and done, the most important thing is that you
are doing the will of God. When all is said and done.’
‘Naturally,’
agreed Jesus, looking down at the chess board. He responded, moving
his rook to protect a threatened piece.
‘And we know
we are doing the will of God, IF we obey him,’ continued
David.
‘Sounds about right,’ responded Jesus, looking at
David’s next move.
‘Yes,’ said David. ‘If we
obey him.’
David looked down at the board, knew what
his next move would be, and took a sip from his coffee.
‘Of
course,’ continued David, ‘Judaism teaches obedience to God as
fundamental to its life. It is the hallmark of Torah faith. Obeying
God’s laws.’
‘Yep,’ responded Jesus, eying the chess
board also.
‘I suppose Christianity has a vague
notion of obeying God. I mean, I suppose some Christians think
occasionally about observing the Sabbath and keeping a kosher diet. I
suppose some do.’
Jesus looked at David and smiled.
‘I really don’t know what to say, King David. I really don’t
know what to say.’
‘Well I know what to say,’
said David, making his next move. ‘Checkmate.’
Jesus
looked down at the set. ‘I really should have seen that coming,
shouldn’t I?’
‘You said it,’ responded the
King of the Jews.
* * * * *
‘Ok. One
more week, Bianca. We have one more week together, and then I start
the six months with Jessica. Now, what do you want from me in this
time? Remember, I am not even supposed to talk to you in the 6
months. I will be totally Jessica’s. So if there is anything you
need to say to me in this week, well, I am waiting to hear
it.’
Bianca looked at him from across the room. ‘Andrew,
there will be time enough once you are back with me for us to share
the time we need together. Look, in the end, if you simply love
Jessica more than me, then so be it. I can’t compete with your own
heart. You just need to know that we are good together. I feel,
honestly, we belong together and can make a go of it. A forever
friendship, if you know what I mean. When I left you the first time,
really…’ she left off speaking. ‘Really, it was because I
wasn’t quite ready for the kind of commitment my heart wanted to
make with you. One of forever. But I want you, ok. I want to be with
you. If that kind of love isn’t enough for you in the end, then.
Then I guess it was never meant to be.’
He came over, kissed
her on the forehead and said ‘Whatever else, Bianca, remember this.
I will love you forever.’
‘Good to know,’ she said, but
her heart was still nervous.
* * * * *
Jessica
looked up at the calendar. 1 week. 1 week and he was hers. She knew,
in her heart, that Bianca would not let him go easily. That, when it
was her turn, she would fight with all her heart to keep her man. But
Jessica knew, deep down in her heart, that her destiny was with
Andrew. That for the long sojourn of eternity before them, only with
Andrew would she find her hearts most complete solace. So she trusted
on the LORD and prayed to him fervently for Andrew to see the wisdom
in choosing her and knowing that she would be a faithful and loving
wife – eternally. In the end, if she offered her whole heart to
him, she knew she couldn’t lose. And if love was not strong enough
for that – well what use was love for in the end anyway.
*
* * * *
‘Don’t talk to strangers!’
‘And
why is that, Ronnie James Dio?’
Ronnie smiled, tinkled away
on his piano, and said nothing more.
Cheryl smiled, took a sip
on her brandy, and wandered back to her usual seat in the bar. There
was no Nathan tonight. She was on her own. She had taken the flight
to Zaphon just prior to the sabbath, as she usually did, obtained her
regular room without too many problems, and drifted down to the bar
to enjoy the sabbath evening, sipping on juice to start with, but
having a few heavier drinks as midnight turned over.
She
loved it up here, up in the heights of Zaphon tower, looking out over
brightly lit Zaphona, looking out at the trillions of lives caught up
in the hurly burly of life in the Realm of Eternity, chasing their
dreams, chasing their passions.
What was in the heart
of Cheryl Colson, member of girl band extraordinaire ‘The
Supergirl’s’, on this lovely fine evening? What mystery occupied
her soul on this fine night?
She asked herself those
questions, sitting at her table, sipping slowly on her third brandy,
looking out at Eternity. Of course, Nathan was on her mind. Nathan
Yeltsin, Ketravim like her, seemingly the most suitable and likely
eternal match for Cheryl Colson. The perfect companion for her life,
the ultimate mate, the ideal husband. Life with him could be
fantastic, couldn’t it? Could be fantastic.
There
could be parties, social events, get togethers – all sorts of do’s
for the future of Cheryl Colson – all with the handsome Nathan
Yeltsin on her arm. They could be famous – more so – the life of
the Zaphon social scene, all perfect, all lovely, all
wonderful.
And children – lots and lots of pretty,
smart and beautiful children. All doing well in life, all succeeding,
all adoring their fabulous parents, all perfect.
Yes.
All perfect. All perfect. All perfect.
Its just that,
well, well, well?
Something wasn’t quite right.
Something wasn’t quite good enough. Something wasn’t quite
perfect. Oh, she couldn’t fault Nathan – he was wonderful in so
many ways. Smart, successful, loving. He was the ideal man – wasn’t
he? And life together with him could be wonderful forever. Forever
and a day. Absolutely wonderful. But still, something wasn’t
right.
And sitting there, looking down into her glass
of brandy, contemplating her eternal life before her, a little voice
whispered into her heart and said ‘Remember the words of the
angel.’ And just then, her thoughts turned to that of Bill Smith –
William Smith – her janitor, and, thinking on his smile, his warm
and lovely and oh so friendly smile, suddenly the heart of Cheryl
Colson, Supergirl extraordinaire, cheered up, and thoughts of the
perfect Nathan Yeltsin seemed to be overshadowed by a simpler, but
more perfect love because of it.
* * * * *
‘We
are home,’ said Jacob to Rachel. ‘We are home.’
‘And
what next then? What next?’
‘The usual, I guess.’
‘Which
is?’ inquired the wife of Israel.
‘Oh, you know. Settle
in, probably start another business of sorts for an income, I guess.
I know we have enough investments on Televon and elsewhere to
probably get us by with forever, but we have long since agreed we
should be doing some sort of work for a living. It is our way, after
all.’
‘Yes,’ agreed Rachel. ‘But is it to be the
simple life, this time, or do you want to complicate things?
Politics, Executive level CEO, those sorts of ambitions? Or is it
something new for us?’
‘I don’t know,’ responded
Jacob. ‘We have done a lot of things now. Used up a lot of ideas,
really.’
‘Ok. Well, I suggest we just do what we are good
at and what we enjoy doing. As simple as that.’
‘Which
is?’ Jacob asked of his wife.
‘The basic farming life.
Noah plans on an extensive ranch with cattle and sheep and perhaps
even llamas. That should do us, I feel. Shearing sheep, putting out
hay, mending fences. The same old simple life which we all started
with.’
‘And that will suit you?’ he inquired.
‘Oh,
I expect you to ensure our investments stay profitable. I don’t
really want to have to ever struggle for a living after all. But as
long as we can comfortably live here at Titea’s dream, looking over
the homestead, enjoying the simple life, perhaps raising some more
family, then, to me Jacob,’ she left of speaking.
‘Yes,’
he responded.
‘Well, to me, whatever dreams of glory someone
may want to eventually pursue, whatever great ambitions, whatever
noble desires. When it all comes right down to it, if you can live a
simple life, get along well with your neighbour, and feed and house
your loved ones. Well it doesn’t get any more complicated than
that.’
And all Jacob could say was ‘Amen.’
*
* * * *
‘Well, life goes on,’ said Michael,
watching Gabriel do his yo-yo tricks.’
‘Yep,’ agreed the
Archangel overseer of eternity.
‘What next, I wonder.’
‘Oh,
more of the same, I suppose,’ responded Gabriel.
‘Yes, I
guess so. I mean, it has been an interesting few years, seeing you
settle into the job, ready now as overseer to take the Realm
forwards, onwards, into eternity before us.’
‘Sounds like
what I agreed to,’ replied Gabriel.
‘Yep. A bold leap
forward. Were no man or angel has gone before.’
‘The final
frontier,’ said Gabriel.
‘Yep,’ said Michael. ‘Now,
how do you do those yo-yo tricks?’
Gabriel sighed, opened
his drawer and pulled out another yo-yo and, for the next few hours,
proceeded to teach Michael the intricacies of one of mankind’s
favourite pastime hobbies.
* * * * *
‘Well,
it has been a good year, El. A good year. But one last thing seems to
beckon.’
‘Which is?’ inquired Elenniel, working on
another painting in her art room in Pellersphon keep.
‘The
fate of Daniel and Ambriel.’
‘Yes,’ she responded.
‘Ariel’s judgement. Look, I am sure Ariel will make the right
decision in the end. I trust her.’
‘Yes, I guess so. I’m
glad it is not me, though. Wouldn’t want to be tossed into a pile
of horse-poo. Raguel is apparently making it extra smelly as
well.’
‘Good on Rags,’ replied Elenniel. ‘Now, does
this look like you?’ she asked him, showing him her latest
masterpiece. It was a very abstract looking image, done in a number
of famous styles, all mixed together in a mish-mash of sorts, but,
strangely, a familiar face beckoned him from within its
frames.
‘Hey, that’s me, isn’t it?’ asked
Michael.
Elenniel smiled. She had achieved her objective.
*
* * * *
‘So, you coming?’
‘To what?’
replied Aquariel to Gabriel’s question.
‘To the big
happening. Over near Danielphon. The big
celebration.’
‘Celebration?’ she asked innocently.
‘You
know. The royal dumping.’
‘Oh, that,’ she responded,
laughing a little. ‘I guess. It could be fun, watching Daniel
humiliated like that.’
‘Oh, so you already know the
result, do you?’
‘Lets just say I have a strong
hunch.’
‘You could be right,’ responded Gabriel. ‘Still,
either way, it should be a great spectacle. Always nice to see the
lighter side of life from time to time. Things can often get so damn
serious. It seems, under Michael, it had always been like that. So
damn serious.’
‘And you intend to change that?’ she
asked of him, turning a page in her magazine.
‘Uh, mmm.
Well, no. I mean, I don’t really go for juvenile behaviour myself.
I am quite sensitive to the importance of a lawful lifestyle like
Michael. Just as much as him I feel in many ways. Its just that…’
he left off, looking into the air.
‘Its just what?’ asked
Aquariel.
‘Its just that I am not Michael, in the end, and I
am not firstborn. I don’t really have the kind of obligations
towards God – the seriousness – the constant need for dedication
– that he has had to display towards all of us. Sure, I can’t
really escape those realities either, but there is also no point in
reinventing the wheel.’
‘Which means?’ she asked him,
putting down her magazine.
‘Which means, whatever else, the
Michael approach won’t be my own. Certainly, I intend law and order
to be maintained. We can hardly function as a society if chaos
reigns. But, in my own way, if I can bring a lighter touch to life in
the realm of eternity – if people feel they can breathe a little
when they stuff up and not be so concerned about always having to get
it perfect – if people can relax and just be themselves, and life
at lifes ironies a little. Well, then I think my own desires and
purposes for my time as overseer will have made their mark.’
‘And
with Angels like Daniel you can hardly fail.’
And all
Gabriel could say was ‘Amen to that.’
* * * *
*
‘Well, ok Bianca. I guess this is it. I’m
off.’
Bianca looked at him, his suitcase packed, his best
shirt on, looking as handsome as ever. She came over to him, put her
hand on his shoulder and said. ‘Well, remember, you have 6 months.
6 months. If you are going to chose her in the end, make sure she
deserves it sweetheart, ok. Make sure she deserves it.’
‘Will
do,’ he responded.
‘I won’t kiss you. You’ll be back
soon enough for that. Now get, ok. Get going.’
He looked at
her, wanted to say so many things, a world full of so many things,
but in the end just gave her a little wave, turned, and walked out
the door off to his other half.
At Jess’s he
steadied himself, knocked on the door, and it quickly opened. Jess
stood there, naked, smiling at him. She grabbed him by the collar,
pulled him inside, and said to him. ‘Right. Your mine. For six
months you are mine. And I have been a very lonely girl for quite
some time now and I need attention. Attention from a man who himself,
I am sure, needs some good loving.
And Andrew sighed.
Whatever else, whatever choice his heart ultimately made, he knew
with Jessica he would never be left wanting that most carnal of
desires. And while his heart may end up choosing Bianca, his flesh
certainly knew were he was most at home. It certainly knew that
indeed.
* * * * *
Yet, despite it being
the final hour, for in three days he would face his judgement, Daniel
today was in a relatively good mood. All things considered, a
relatively good mood. Something quite ironic had happened just the
night before – he had won the lottery. The major realm lottery
sweep, with a third prize in the contest of quite a few Quadrillion
Realm Credits. And while his own vast wealth was many times that
anyway, it was always a nice buzz, a nice thing to happen.
He
took Ariel out to a fancy restaurant that evening, fully claimed that
it was only because of the win fall that they were celebrating and,
that to be fair to Ambriel, she not take it into account. And she
sighed, looking at him, and nodded. ‘I probably wouldn’t have
anyway, Danny. I have already made up my mind on the outcome.’
‘Oh,’
he responded, looking at her. Well, whatever will be will be,
then.’
‘As you say,’ she responded.
They
dined well that night, in a lovely restaurant in Zaphon tower, and
later on, in a bar, by the window, looking out over Zaphon city, he
looked romantically into the eyes of his twin as a certain rock star
named Ronnie James Dio tinkered away on the piano and said ‘I do
love you, you know Ariel.’
And she said, ‘I know.’
*
* * * *
Jessica sat in her red Ferrari, at a lookout
near were she lived, looking out over the city. She had 6 months –
6 months to make her mark on her man. For the past few days she had
faced reality, that reality being, in the end, Andrew might just
choose Bianca. And while she hated having to face that, should it
occur, she knew she just might have to. She had agreed to that after
all. But, if he did, if he chose her, what then?
She
mused that she would probably, in the end, return home to mum and
dad. All the way back to were she had wandered from. Back to
humanity, and their natural fold. Sure, she had permission now to
remain in the Realm of Eternity, and would seriously consider doing
that. Perhaps she would even return one day. But, with the broken
heart she anticipated that she might just have to face, she would
need the loving of and comfort of her parents and family. But,
whatever else, that decision was still a year away, and for the time
being she had the attention and the heart of Andrew to win. So she
would do the best she could.
She knew, in her heart,
that all the sex she had been throwing him wouldn’t make him choose
her in the end. But there was another truth – it wouldn’t hurt
either. If she showered him with devotion, and love, and took care of
his carnal desires – if she showed herself a complete wife – then
she would end up with a man to support her and look after her eternal
needs. And that was still an important thing, even with all the
support available to a lady in the heavenlies. With a man, a faithful
man, dreams could be made, and glories achieved. And she could rest
from worries about being single and lonely, and not belonging to
somebody. She could belong – she could fit in – and not again
have to go through a string of rotten boyfriends who mainly wanted
her for her body and what she could do for them.
With
Andrew, though, love was the ultimate reality. And she really did, in
the end. She really did love him. He was perfect for her, in more
ways than one, and with him she felt her destiny in life would be
complete.
So she would pray and love, pray and love,
and hope to hell that God was listening. And after that? Well only
time would tell.
* * * * *
Abraham was
out on the lake in the valley of Titea’s Dream, after sunset,
sitting in the boat Noah had arranged for him, with his son Isaac.
They were night fishing under the gentle moonlit sky, hoping for a
good catch, but never really minding anyway.
‘So
this is home, dad,’ said Isaac.
‘It does appear to
be.’
‘We have been through so many adventures together.
Seen so much. I guess it is good to have a final resting
place.’
Abraham was silent for a few moments, thinking over
those words. Eventually he spoke. ‘You know, Isaac. The LORD our
God has blessed us for so long. Leading us onwards, teaching us his
ways, teaching us his knowledge, teaching us his mission. And through
all that long service I have come to trust that he knows what he is
doing in our lives, despite our often and constant objections. It
seems to me, son, if there is a meaning in life or, rather, a way to
best live life. Well, as so many of us brave sons of Noah have said
before, it is in obeying the Lord our God, and doing his will as best
we can, that perfect peace, life and consolation can find the heart
of man, man which needs its God at his very centre and heart.’
And
Isaac said ‘Amen.’
* * * * *
Noah
looked out at the starlit valley, smiling. Titea was beside
him.
‘Whatever else, it will work for us,’ said Noah,
confidently. ‘This new dream of ours, I feel, will find a permanent
place in our hearts. Eternity is so long, in so many ways, yet so
constant in so many others. It takes forever to live it but, even
then, you still can’t get to its ending. But our father in heaven
will always be there, guiding us, teaching us, leading us ever
onwards into the dreams of destiny, the chartings of fate, and the
heart of life. And what more can we ask of our God than that.’
‘We
can ask him for bloody Abraham and Isaac to get the point that is far
too cold a night to go out bloody fishing.’
And Noah laughed
and said ‘Amen to that.’
* * * * *
Jesus
looked at his wife. In truth, the heart of the Christ of Christianity
never really could or would relent of the course of life it had
chosen for itself. All those long years ago, suffering on that cross,
he had known in his heart the fateful choice his destiny had chosen
for him. He never, with all the pain he had felt, could ever really
relent after that.
He had seen so much suffering with
his church, and he had known, also, his church had caused others to
suffer also – often unjustly – often unfairly. But his heart was
for his ecclesia, his chosen ones, and in pursuing the truths and
life which the Christian faith offered and, what he saw in his Gospel
which he in all honestly felt that Judaism simply lacked, he could
not relent and give up from what his heart believed to be so
definitely true. There was a saying he was familiar with – quitters
never win and winners never quit. So he would never quit, he would go
on forever, making his claim, teaching his gospel truths, pursuing
his objectives. He would earn the name of Jesus Christ and make sure,
in the end, that blessed Israel knew just who the man from Nazareth
really was.
But, looking at his wife, and finding in
the deepest most central part of his heart a simple truth of his own
genes and his own family origin, he knew that he must, in the end,
love Israel also. That he must love the people of his own blood, for
they were his family and that, despite all the hostility that had
long been between Israel and his own church, reconciliation, in true
Catholic and Christian tradition, must be achieved. Forgiveness must
remain eternally the heart of the Gospel of God.
So he
wondered over to Jenna, his wife – his Orthodox Jewish wife –
hugged her, said he loved her and asked ‘What is for dinner?’
‘Why
pork sausages’ she said, with a huge grin on her face, and all
Jesus could say in response was, ‘Well amen to that.’
*
* * * *
Valandriel looked at Daniel. He looked at his
compatriot, his partner in the great and grand machinations of glory
they both sought, and said ‘Whatever else, Kemosabe, lose with
dignity. Remember, we have a bloody reputation to maintain. If you
end up the unlucky one and have to be tossed to the shit, as they put
it, don’t winge, don’t complain, just take it with the grace of
God. Life goes on, anyway, Kemosabe, and there is a bigger picture to
remember. So stay focused on that.’
‘Easy for you to say,’
said the grumbling Daniel. ‘Your not facing utter humiliation in
front of the entire elder Seraphim community.
‘But humbling
is good for the soul,’ said Valandriel, a smile on his face. ‘Were
would we be without the legendary humility of Daniel the Seraphim in
the end?’ And a certain Holy Spirit which was listening in on the
conversation almost said to itself ‘Oh brother.’
‘So
cheer up, Danny Boy. Give us a good outing, and keep the faith and
all that. Kapiche Kemosabe?’
‘Kapiche,’ responded the
utterly miserable 45th Seraphim of Eternity.
* * * *
*
‘Remember, don’t gloat,’ rebuked Meludiel to a
very smug looking Ambriel.
‘I won’t,’ said Ambriel, but
there was glee in his eyes.
‘And give the lad a break when
they toss him in. After all, you wouldn’t like it to be YOU would
you.’
‘Certainly not,’ retorted Ambriel. ‘But I don’t
have to worry. Ariel is a very sensible girl. I am sure she has made
the right decision. I trust her.’
‘There is many a slip
betwixt cup and lip, oh Messiah of glory.’
‘True,’ said
Ambriel.
‘And pride comes before the fall,’ she
continued.
‘Again, I must admit to some boasting of heart,’
he responded, with a grin on his face. ‘But it will be good to see
him tossed in the shit. It will make my day.’
‘Yes,’
said Meludiel, eyeing her beloved. What would Ariel choose? What had
she chosen already? Tomorrow, Judgement Day, would reveal all.
‘And,
remember, just in case a miracle happens, and it is your own fine
posterior which ends up being dumped in the poo, take it with
dignity, brother. Take it with dignity.’
‘I’ll try,’
he responded, but still the mad grin remained.
* * * *
*
And so, the day of days dawned. Daniel looked all
worn out from his previous night’s worries, but Ambriel looked all
the go, thought Ariel. They were all gathered at a nearby paddock to
Danielphon, the senior Seraphim males and females there to hear
Ariel’s judgement. The Theophany had also arrived, watching
cautiously, Valandriel chatting to him over by the see-saw in the
park.
Saruviel was chatting with Michael, smoking one
of his rare cigarettes, and Gabriel was standing next to Aquariel,
catching up about this and that. Krystabel, Nimorel, Karel and
Brindabel were a tight little group, discussing the probable fate of
Daniel and of sure mind that Ariel would do the wise thing and
sensibly choose Ambriel. Meludiel stood a little away from Ariel,
ready for the worst, worried about both her men. Raphael was sitting
on the ground, cross legged, not far from the shit, having smelled
it, and was pitying the fate of the loser, which Phanuel and Uriel
were chuckling about. And Raguel had a stick, was poking at the shit
and declaring to everyone ‘Well it smells as bad as we can make it.
I have added some extra ingredients just to make sure the loser never
quite forgets his shame.’
There they were, a happy
little group, the elder of the elect angels of God, waiting upon a
long waited upon judgement to sort out two proud and warring
parties.
The theophany spoke up. ‘Come on Ariel. Put
them out of their misery. Your God commands that of you.’
Ariel
nodded, came to the centre of the group, and the angels gathered
around.
She turned to a nervous looking Daniel.
‘Daniel. You are my twin, my brother, and I love you. You have
tried somewhat in the last few weeks to show you care, and I have
noticed, alright. I have noticed.’
She then turned to
Ambriel. ‘But Ambriel, your attention has indeed been wonderful.
Truly devoted, truly caring, truly loving. I could not ask much more
of you. Not that much more, anyway.’
‘But,’ she
said, turning to the group. ‘I have indeed made up my
mind.’
‘Here we go,’ said Valandriel to
God.
Michael and Gabriel and Saruviel, who had
volunteered to throw the loser in wether or not her protested, came
forward.
‘But,’ continued Ariel. ‘A choice has
to be made.’
She turned to Daniel. ‘Daniel. You
are my twin, my brother, and indeed I love you deeply.’ She
caressed his face, her honesty apparent. ‘But, in the pride you
have exhibited for so very long. In all the mocking words of Daniel
the Seraphim, I can not choose you on this occasion. I am sorry, but
I won’t choose you to defeat Ambriel.’
‘Shit,’
said Daniel.
‘That sounds about right,’ said Michael, and
the three angels picked him up, with little resistance, and tossed
him head first into the big tip of horse poo. Ambriel came over,
smiled, and looked at him. ‘I have a lecture for you, mighty proud
one. You may find the words familiar. And it is this. Part of being
in the Hearts of Men, Daniel,’ continued Ambriel the Seraphim,
looking at his brother emerging from the pool of shit, is showing you
care. You obviously don’t.’
Daniel was angry. Very
angry. He had lost the contest by Ariel choosing Ambriel, had been
thrown into the pile of shit by a number of Seraphim, and Ambriel had
smugly claimed Daniel didn’t really care very much about Ariel
anymore, anyway.
He looked right at his brother, and a
cold wind turned over. ‘Fine, Ambriel. Fine. I guess not. I guess I
don’t care about you very much at all, again.’
Ambriel
smiled and, as Daniel trudged away, the Theophany of God no longer
had a grin on his face. Destiny had made a claim, just then, for
Daniel. He was now separate from his brethren. But as for when that
separation would be? Well, only in the goodness of time would they
find out.
Daniel was a little away, when he saw Ariel
beckoning to him. ‘Come here, sweetie. You have learned your
lesson. Now, dear friends, like I said, I didn’t choose
Daniel.’
Ambriel stopped in his tracks. ‘Yeh. But,
Ariel?’
‘But I didn’t choose you, either Ambriel. Both
of you have been far, far too proud for me to choose either.’
‘Which
means,’ asked Daniel, with a devilish look on his face, staring
right at Ambriel.
‘Which means you both lost,’ responded
Ariel.
Michael looked at Gabriel, and Saruviel nodded
and said ‘Well ok then,’ and they came over to a very innocent
looking Ambriel who was going ‘but, but, but,’ picked him up,
tossed him into the shit, and as he climbed out a very satisfied
looking Daniel the Seraphim was going ‘hah, hah,
hah.’
Epilogue
God
sighed. Daniel, Daniel, Daniel, Daniel, Daniel. Whatever shall we do
with Daniel? Mmmmm.
The End